Constance A. Cook (Editor) - John S. Major (Editor) - Defining Chu - Image and Reality in Ancient China-University of Hawaii Press (2004)
Constance A. Cook (Editor) - John S. Major (Editor) - Defining Chu - Image and Reality in Ancient China-University of Hawaii Press (2004)
Constance A. Cook (Editor) - John S. Major (Editor) - Defining Chu - Image and Reality in Ancient China-University of Hawaii Press (2004)
Chu
Defining
Chu
Image and Reality in Ancient China
Edite d by
John S. Major
Honolulu
© University of Hawai‘i Press
All rights reserved
Printed in the United States of America
Introduction 1
Constance A. Cook and Barry B. Blakeley
• v •
. Chu Law in Action: Legal Documents from Tomb at Baoshan 77
Susan Weld
Conclusion 167
John S. Major
Notes 177
Bibliography 213
Contributors 239
Index 241
Contents
• vi •
Preface
What Does “Defining Chu” Mean?
Constance A. Cook
E xhauste d and corrupt, a state called Chu collapsed in 1 under military pres-
sure from a northwestern state called Qin. Chu had been pushed out of its homeland
in central China by the expanding state of Qin over the course of the Warring States period,
– . By the time of its defeat in , Chu existed only in the newly conquered
eastern and southern fringes of its formerly massive territory. The military thrust of northern
and western peoples to the resource-rich lands of the south and east began with the Zhou
over a millennium earlier. By the time China’s first empire was established by Qin, the differ-
ent peoples from all corners of the ancient Chinese world would have experienced a long his-
tory of interaction and mutual influence. Chu peoples, originally located just southeast of the
Zhou homeland in modern Shaanxi Province, had likewise been both the subject and object
of military and diplomatic intercourse for hundreds of years before their self-proclaimed
status as a legitimate kingdom.
After the disintegration of Zhou lineage domination in the eighth century , the Chu
polity grew in strength and began its own campaigns for military domination of the east and
south. In the process Chu became a conduit for intercourse between peoples of all regions.
Before Chu was crushed by the Qin it had, at its military peak, threatened to dominate all of
early China. Despite its political defeat, the intense cultural mix that had become identified
with the Chu polity over the course of history was reinvented by the Han emperors after the
short-lived Qin rule. In order to provide a spiritual and romantic antidote to the harsh laws
of the Qin, Han period writers were encouraged to preserve the images and songs of what
they remembered as Chu, an exotic shamanistic culture of southern and southeastern bar-
barians. The Han established a subkingdom named Chu near the ancestral burial ground of
• vii •
its first emperor; its capital, Pengcheng (modern Xuzhou, Jiangsu), became a center of Daoist
and early Buddhist cult activity. This eastern kingdom, along with the southern kingdom of
Changsha, established around the mythic Dongting Lake region in modern Hunan, repre-
sented for the Han the spirit of Chu. It is the image of this spirit that has persisted up to mod-
ern times and what we will use as a foil against which to compare the image of a real Chu,
one currently emerging from the material remains—texts, tombs, and cities—excavated from
the original territory of the Chu state in the Han River valley in modern Hubei and Henan.2
Much of our book is devoted to describing and analyzing the Warring States period con-
struction of the Chu polity as it moved farther and farther from its original homeland, absorb-
ing as it went the customs and culture of the peoples it dominated. Eventually, over the course
of the book, we see the emergence of the constructed Chu image from historical reality—a
reality argued according to each author’s interpretation of archaeological or historical mate-
rials that they accept as defining Chu.
Chu culture—a complexity of institutions and beliefs that evolved over time—has fasci-
nated the Chinese since the Han period. This book is simply an attempt to present for the
Western reader a glimpse of the twentieth-century image of Chu, as presented in a recent
flurry of articles and books by archaeologists and scholars.3 It is impossible for one book ade-
quately to represent the entire field of Chu studies—our debt is too great. We leave the
analysis of the post-Han images of Chu as a topic for specialists in those periods. We shall
simply express here our gratitude to those interpreters of pre-Qin data who came before us
and paved the road to this book. Noel Barnard and K. C. Chang in particular have produced
studies critical to our emerging understanding of Chu. As early as , long before the dis-
covery of the Mawangdui tomb complex in , Barnard called for “a complete re-appraisal
of the culture of this ‘barbarian’ state.” 4 In that same year, K. C. Chang published a study of
Neolithic archaeological material that connected the early cultural history of south China to
the larger archaeological context of Pacific Basin cultures.5 Barnard added to this effort in
with an unsurpassed edited volume of scholarly research on the links between the arts
of these cultures.6 His work on the Chu Silk Manuscript influenced a number of chap-
ters in this volume; 7 we are proud to include in our own book Li Ling’s masterful translation
of that very difficult and recalcitrant document.
The discovery of southern texts from tombs during this century, such as the Chu Silk
Manuscript and the Mawangdui Han tomb materials, revealed the sophistication of the south
but at the same time reinforced the traditional image of a literate Chu culture centered in the
Changsha region; archaeological materials discovered in recent decades have radically altered
that view, and our review of the present state of the field reflects the influence of this new
material. It is in answer to Barnard’s original call for a reappraisal of the evidence, and in
response to K. C. Chang’s plea for the integrated study of cultures past and present,8 that we
dedicate the effort of this book.
The editors also owe many people and institutions credit for their help and inspiration. We
are grateful to Martha Avery of Avery Press, Inc., for her encouragement in the early stages
of the book and for allowing us to use slides from her collection. For their work on the maps
and figures, we thank the following Lehigh University staff and students: Zhong Yin and
Preface
• viii •
Tan Xiaodong of the Earth and Environmental Sciences Department, Patrick Sheridan and
Johanna Brams of the International Media Resource Center, and the staff of Media Pro-
duction at Linderman Library. Anne Holmes, Rob Rudnick, and Sabrina Starnaman worked
on the bibliography. We thank Jessica Rawson and Carol Michaelson of the British Museum
for their help on short notice. Financial support for production of the book came from the
editors, especially John Major; from the individual authors, especially Barry Blakeley; and
from Lehigh University. Constance Cook’s research was supported by the Center for Schol-
arly Communication with the Peoples Republic of China (National Academy of Sciences)
and Lehigh University.
Preface
• ix •
Introduction
Constance A. Cook
T he state of Chu occupied the southern fringe of ancient China’s heartland. From a
small base in the west, it expanded in all directions. At one point, in the sixth century
, it came within a political hair of dominating all of China. Three centuries later the state
was crushed, but the image of “Chu” has survived in the Chinese consciousness as a poetic
symbol of an alternative, slightly barbarous culture—one that existed outside the mainstream
of proper Confucian society and civilization. Archaeological evidence confirms the evolution
of a distinctive southern culture, but it also reveals a level of sophistication that challenged and
surpassed that of its northern neighbors with the advent of the Han. Evidence also reveals
that in both areas the high culture was deeply rooted in recognizable earlier Zhou and Shang
cultural foundations, so that the south and the north, far from being strangers to each other,
were in fact blood relations. Chu culture was a synthesis of transmitted high culture and the
numerous regional cultures absorbed during its expansion. It was a force so strong that when
rebels first rose up against the oppressive, unifying Qin dynasty at the end of the third cen-
tury , their cry was “Great Chu shall rise again!”—and so it did, revived first in name by
the rebel leader Xiang Yu and later in spirit by Liu Bang, the first emperor of the Han.1
• 1 •
ern China, the lands surrounding the middle and lower valleys of the Yellow River and its
tributaries. The fruits of the archaeological efforts of the past half century or so, however,
have made it increasingly evident that this conventional view is only partly correct. It is clear
now that in fact Chinese civilization is a synthesis of cultural elements drawn from various
areas, including the south. Unfortunately, what is evident from archaeological research has not
yet affected the mainstream of historical writing about China. Sinologists still cherish the tra-
ditional text-based view of the south, a view that we term the “Northern Bias.”
The Northern Bias derives both from the Chinese reverence for the written words of
antiquity and from the fact that the most ancient of surviving historical texts were written by
court scholars with northern roots. As Confucianism was established as state orthodoxy (dur-
ing the Han period, in the first century ), these early texts were adopted as classics and
became the foundation for Chinese historical consciousness. Since these texts framed the past
in terms of three northern dynasties—the Xia, the Shang, and the Zhou—southern contri-
butions were ignored. The tendency to equate civilization with the Confucian culture of the
court is apparent even in the great book of the famous Han historian, Sima Qian: the Shiji
(Records of the Archivist), of about . Although he traveled to the south and expressed
sympathy with Daoism, a religion he associated with Chu, Sima Qian still described Chu in
the imperialist terms of a northerner.2
Questions of Origin
Sima Qian described the Han region of Chu-Yue (a general term for the south by then) as
vast, fertile, and relatively unpopulated. The people, he claimed, were lazy and poor, living
hand-to-mouth off the plentiful rice, fish, and fruit. Free from the fear of freezing to death or
going hungry, they made no effort to store up for hard times.3 In
his chapter on the royal house of the Eastern Zhou period Chu
state, he quoted an ancestral ruler of Chu as saying,“We are south-
ern barbarians” (manyi, literally, fringe Yi-peoples).4
The conception of the Chu as barbarians appeared earlier
in the Guoyu (Conversations of the states), written late in the
Warring States period (– ). There is a record of a con-
versation between northern military men contemplating the
material bounty of Chu in a manner similar to the later Sima Ancient Chinese graph
“Chu” from the Zhongzi
Qian: “since the Chu are manyi, they are unable to treasure it.”5
Hua pan [after Zhang Yu
The manyi heritage is given historicity when the Shiji records that et al. Jinshi dazidian.
an early Chu lord, Xiong Yi, served King Cheng of Zhou (late Taipei, reprint, ]
eleventh century ) and was awarded the land of the Chu man,
“the barbarians of Chu.” One of Xiong Yi’s descendants, Xiong Qu, after pacifying the
peoples between the Jiang and Han Rivers, claimed independence from the Zhou, called
himself a manyi, and set his sons up as kings of various southern regions. This independence
lasted until the Zhou King Li’s reign (mid-ninth century ), when Xiong Qu, fearing Li’s
belligerence, backed down.6
• 2 •
The northern association of an ancient Chu-Jing region with “barbarians” can be traced
to the Western Zhou period (– ). In Western Zhou bronze inscriptions, south-
erners, referred to both as manyi and nanyi (southern Yi-peoples), were the objects of repres-
sive military campaigns. Zhou warriors were rewarded for capturing people and booty, most
particularly in the form of metal.7 Inscriptions proclaimed the “taming” of the Chu and Jing
peoples, noting that the leaders of the man came to the Zhou court, no doubt bearing gifts.8
The word chu at that time did not refer to a specific state, but to a region coterminous with
the Jing region. A Han etymological dictionary defines the words chu and jing as clusters of
prickly bushes, “barbs,” connoting wild lands. The early graph representing the word chu
shows a foot surrounded by vegetation. While this graph represents a place name as early as
, during the Shang period, there is currently no material culture that can be unequiv-
ocally identified as Chu until after the end of the Western Zhou period in the eighth century
.9
Ancestors
The Chinese scholarly obsession with tracing the ancestral and tribal roots of the Chu has
necessarily begun with Sima Qian’s account of the Chu lineage. There we see the Han
scholars’ own obsession with tracing all peoples back to astral deities. While late Warring
States and Han texts are inconsistent in their naming of the high gods of Chu, all associate
them with the sun, fire, or heat: the gods Gao Yang (High Sun-essence),Yan Di (Flame God),
and Zhu Rong (Invoking Melter; also known as huozheng, Fire Corrector). Of these, only
Zhu Rong is attested in pre-Han texts, such as the Zuozhuan. Recent bamboo divination texts
from fourth-century tombs in the Jiangling region list three divine ancestors: Lao Tong
(Old Boy), Zhu Rong, and a mysterious female by the name of Yu Yin, a loan for Yu Xiong,
traditionally believed to be an early tribal leader of the Chu people.Yu Xiong may have been
a Chu manifestation of Nügua and Zhu Rong of Fuxi, anthropomorphized deities of Yin and
Yang, thus providing a pre-Han locus for Yin-Yang thought in Chu.10
Introduction
• 3 •
eastern fraction of the territory left over from the late Warring States stronghold of Chu
power in the Huai River valley.13 The original population of that region was known in the
Zhou period texts as Yi peoples of the Huai River valley (the huaiyi) and were distinguished
from the Eastern Yi (dongyi) and Southern Yi (nanyi).14
Eastern Zhou period archaeological records directly contradict the Zhou and Han histor-
ical accounts of the Chu. Recent archaeological discoveries reveal an affluent Chu elite with
a strong Zhou bias that was gradually modified as the state pushed east and south in its quest
for resources and power. Although archaeology at present does not reveal much about the
ethnic identities or lives of commoners, it does suggest that the Chu state absorbed many
communities of different peoples—peoples that at an earlier stage might be classified by
Chinese archaeologists as Yue and by Han dynasty Chinese as Yi-barbarians; peoples whose
worship of gui (spirits) had also been deplored in Han historical sources.15
The religious practices and beliefs associated with Chu and Yue—use of shamans in the
worship of ghosts and spirits—most likely referred to local variations of ancient practices that
can be attested at least back to the Spring and Autumn period (– ) and probably as
far back as the Shang. The fact that the Han historians label them “excessive” reveals not only
their own lack of historical perspective, but also that, by the Han period, these rites had
become associated with classes of people or cultural elements the court elite wished to
repress. In an attempt to reorient the imperial identity away from Chu culture and to demote
the literati of Chu regions, such as those at the court of Huainan, the term “Chu” became
associated with local man traditions, and thus all of Chu—past, present, and future—was
demoted to barbarian status.16
Changsha
Popular imagination (including elements handed down from Han times), reinforced by the
discovery in the twentieth century of late Warring States period and Han period tomb treas-
ures in Changsha, led to the conventional view that Chu culture was centered in the middle
Yangtze valley. While there is no question that this valley, a cradle of cultural interaction
among many different peoples, contributed immeasurably to what would by Han times be
thought of as Chu culture, it was not the center of Chu activity during its military peak, from
the sixth to the third centuries . During that period, the attention of the Chu rulers was
focused on the Huai River valley and the Nanchang Basin.17 Changsha for the Chu was a
military outpost called Linxiang (Overlooking the Xiang River), maintained most likely to
facilitate trade.18 The strategic importance of this region was recognized by the Han.19
Shortly after Han Gaozu, the first emperor of Han, sent Wu Rui, a native of the
southeastern lake region—the former territory of Yue—to turn the Qin garrison into the
kingdom of Changsha.20
Jia Yi (ca. – ), a northerner from Luoyang, made the kingdom resonate with the
spirit of Qu Yuan (ca. – ), a Chu minister popularly thought of as the author of the
Chuci, the only collection of poetry traditionally associated with Chu culture.21 Qu Yuan, like
Jia Yi, had been exiled from court to this “low and wet” land of no return. Qu Yuan com-
• 4 •
mitted suicide by jumping into the Milo River, but Jia Yi, after contemplation of Qu Yuan’s
watery grave, went on to Changsha as tutor to the Wu family.22 Despite the horror both men
apparently felt for the Changsha region, the shamanistic songs of the Chuci, rich with imagery
of the Dongting Lake region, evoke in the Chinese mind a romantic image of Chu, the land
of poetic tristesse and divine trysts.23
Introduction
• 5 •
Part I
Perspectives
in Defining
Chu Culture
1
The Geography of Chu
Barry B. Blake ley
F rom a very meager territorial base at the outset, Chu eventually absorbed over sixty
states and a number of tribal peoples.1 The result was a virtual empire, covering about
one-half of the Chinese world of the time. Within this empire were various regional cultural
traditions, and this raises fundamental questions concerning the nature and evolution of Chu
culture: what elements were native to the Chu people? How much was a legacy from the
Shang and Zhou? What was derived from the peoples Chu conquered? When did the various
elements enter the matrix? Answering these questions is complicated by two critical issues.
The first is that the locations of two critical capital cities have yet to be determined archaeo-
logically. This means that we do not as yet have a clear picture of the metropolitan culture
through most of the history of the state. Second, and as a result, the bulk of archaeological
evidence generally taken to relate to Chu culture derives from peripheral areas. And the fact
that these materials also are from relatively late phases of Chu history raises the question as to
what extent “Chu culture” as currently understood is a late, peripheral phenomenon. Obvi-
ously, then, an understanding of the geography of Chu history is fundamental to any consid-
eration of Chu culture.
• 9 •
it succeeded in overthrowing the Shang.3 For nearly three centuries thereafter the Zhou
capital remained in the western homeland,4 but in the court was forced to move eastward
to Luoyang (northwest Henan, near the Yellow River), the event that demarcates the Western
and Eastern Zhou periods.
According to the Shiji, the Chu leader Yu Xiong served King Wen as a ritualist,5 and this
hint that there were relations between Chu and Zhou before the conquest of the Shang may
be confirmed by a recently discovered inscription.6 After the conquest, during the reign of
King Cheng (r. –), it is recorded that the Chu leader Xiong Yi, who served at the
Zhou court, was enfeoffed among the Chu man, at Danyang, and sent tribute to the Zhou
king.7 Also during these years, the famous Duke of Zhou (a regent for the young King
Cheng) reportedly sojourned in Chu at a troublesome point in his career.8 Amicable relations
between the two parties seem to have continued until the middle of the tenth century, when
King Zhao (r. –) launched campaigns against Chu (in and ), at least in part in
quest of ores.9 During the second campaign the king and some of his troops were drowned,
although whether this was due to any action on the part of Chu is difficult to say.10 In any
case, before long Chu resumed dispatching tribute to the Zhou court. Thereafter, the Chu
attitude toward their Zhou overlords seems to have wavered,11 and Zhou attacked it again in
.12 The outcome of this final record of Chu-Zhou relations in the Western Zhou period
is not clear, but Chu probably went its own way as Zhou power went into decline in the early
eighth century.
When Chu reappears on the historical stage, at the end of the eighth century, it was
beginning to expand along the southern fringe of the Zhou ecumene. Before turning to that
story, however, we need to examine the question of the geographical locus of Chu down to
that point.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 10 •
argues that both capitals were situated considerably further north: Danyang in the Dan valley
(Shaanxi/Henan) and Ying at a site known as Chu Huangcheng, in Hubei’s Yicheng County
(not far south of the Bend of the Han River at modern Xiangfan) (fig. .).
In locating Danyang the name itself is a clue, since it signifies either south of a Dan
mountain or hill or north of a Dan river. Arguments for the former (employed only within
the Southern School) are extremely forced and rely on relatively late evidence. On the other
hand, the river known even today as the Dan bore this name from quite early times (at least
by the third century ). It is, therefore, the best clue to the location of Danyang and is an
important point in favor of the Northern School view. On the archaeological front, recent
surveys and excavations along the Yangtze have eliminated the Southern School’s Zigui sug-
gestion and, for all intents and purposes, its Dangyang one (at Jijiahu, slightly northwest of
Jinancheng) as well. On the other hand, recent finds in the Dan valley (the Xiasi tombs19) lend
some support to the Northern School suggestion. Until more concrete evidence emerges
from the ground, however, the strongest evidence in favor of this view is its proximity to the
Western Zhou royal domain: the intimate ties between Chu and Zhou in Western Zhou times
outlined above are more easily understood from the perspective of Chu being situated in the
nearby Dan valley than along the quite distant Yangtze.20
Figure 1.1 Map of Jiangling region [by Zhong Yin, Tan Xiaodong, Barry Blakeley]
• 11 •
Figure 1.2 Map of Upper Hanxi, Nanyang Basin, and Dan River valley regions [by Zhong Yin, Tan
Xiaodong, Barry Blakeley]
The name “Ying” provides no clue to its location. A thorough evaluation of centuries of
geographical commentary, however, seriously deflates the Jinancheng (Southern School) view
and provides considerable support for the Chu Huangcheng (Northern School) hypothesis.21
Archaeologically, while Jinancheng was a city of impressive size and one with clear-cut Chu
cultural connections, the remains there are generally of Warring States time and thus are too
late to represent the Ying of Spring and Autumn times.22 Consequently, some Southern
School scholars have nominated Jijiahu (not far northwest of Jinancheng). Some of the tombs
in the vicinity are early enough to support this contention, but none are elite burials and the
date of settlement itself is too late.23 In any case, historical geography offers nothing in favor
of this proposal. At Chu Huangcheng (the Northern School candidate) only preliminary
archaeological surveys have so far been made, with as yet inconclusive results.24 This site, how-
ever, is far closer to the geographical nexus of foreign relations and expansion (discussed
below) than is either Jinancheng or Jijiahu.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 12 •
In sum, the best evidence currently available places Danyang in the Dan valley, and Ying
just south of the Bend of the Han.
• 13 •
Qi (both in Shandong). Chu’s major competitors outside the Yellow River Plain were Wu and
Yue, in the extreme southeast,35 and Qin (which had taken over the original Zhou homeland
in the Wei valley), in the west. Qin would eventually sweep east during the Warring States
period and, in , unify the entire land into a single state. Chu was the most stubborn
obstacle to this, and its fall was one of the very last steps in the process of Qin unification.
We turn now to a survey of the regions that were eventually encompassed within the Chu
realm, each of which was to a greater or lesser extent a distinct cultural sphere.
The Chu heartland through most of its history, in western Hubei and southwestern
Henan, can be subdivided as follows: Hanxi (West of the Han), the broad area of Hubei south
and west of the Han River; Handong (East of the Han), the lands bordering the Dahong
mountains; the Dan valley; and the Nanyang Basin of southwestern Henan. Areas added to
this core were concentrated north and east of the Nanyang Basin, the northern rim of which
is defined by a string of steep hills known in ancient times as Fangcheng.36 On this basis, the
area north and east of the basin was known as Fangcheng Wai (Outside Fangcheng 37 ). Far-
ther east lay the Huai valley, which may be divided into the Upper Huai (west of its con-
junction with the Ru River, in Henan), the Middle Huai (between the Ru and the course of
the ancient Sha River,38 in Anhui), and the Lower Huai (eastward from the Sha, in Anhui and
Jiangsu). Huaibei (North of the Huai) is an ancient term referring to the area north of the
Middle and Lower Huai (in Anhui, Jiangsu, and southern Shandong, including the Si valley).
Below this and north of the Yangtze lay Huainan (South of the Huai, in Anhui and Jiangsu),
the eastern portion of which became the realm of Wu and, later, Yue. To the south of
Huainan (below the Yangtze River) was the area known as Jiangdong (East of the Yangtze
River), in southern Anhui and Jiangsu, as well as northern Jiangxi and Zhejiang. Finally,
below the Chu heartland was Jiangnan (South of the Yangtze).
With this picture in mind, we may turn to an examination of the course of Chu expan-
sion and contraction.39
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 14 •
Figure 1.3 Map of Huai valley region [by Zhong Yin, Tan Xiaodong, Barry Blakeley]
At this point Chu may have been content with expressions of loyalty from most of its
neighbors, but it did incorporate one or two Hanxi states (Quan and, perhaps, Ran46). And if
(as the Northern School would have it) Chu was centered just south of the Bend of the Han
at this time, it would stand to reason that the same fate befell any other states below the
Bend,47 some just west of the Bend,48 and several in Handong.49
• 15 •
New Worlds to Conquer:The Upper Huai Valley and Huainan (655–585)
The early years of this phase coincided with the decline of the leadership role of Qi and a
failed attempt by Song to replace it as Hegemon. Chu was involved in all of this but focused
its territorial aims on the Huai region. In rather quick succession (–) it incorporated
the Upper Huai states of Xuan and Huang and the northwest Huainan state of Ying (or Ying-
shi). After the famous defeat of Chu at Chengpu in Jin rose to the position of Hegemon,
forcing Chu to redirect its attention to the Fangcheng Perimeter. The result was a long, see-
saw struggle between the two (–),54 in which the small states along the fringe of
Fangcheng Wai were pulled first one way and then another. All of this, however, did not deter
Chu in its drang nach Osten. It absorbed Jiang (on the north bank of the Huai) in , and Fan
the following year.55
The thrust into Huainan also intensified. Lyao was taken in , so Jyang (to the west)
probably had fallen before that.56 Zhoulai (eventually the most strategic spot in the Middle
Huai valley) must have been taken over before the end of this era, and the absorption of Liu
(just south of Zhoulai) opened an uncontested route into eastern Huainan. There, the re-
maining polities (the Shu states57) pledged allegiance to Chu, but an independent spirit
(encouraged by Wu) persisted, prompting Chu to incorporate Chao (the most northerly of
the group58) and (in ) ShuLiao (farther south). In that year Chu also concluded a pact with
Wu and Yue, which kept them from wooing the Shu states for a quarter century. This also
allowed Chu to direct its attention to Fangcheng Wai, leading to a major defeat of Jin and its
allies in , at the Battle of Bi.
Meanwhile, Chu gained a foothold in western Huaibei in . This opened a route through
the northern tier of the area and made possible the incorporation of Xiao (in eastern
Huaibei) in . The Chu push in that direction, however, was soon cut off by a major new
threat.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 16 •
began to get the upper hand in , when it incorporated Xyu (just above the Lower Huai)
and occupied Zhoulai. The latter was the key to the Upper Huai, and in the first Wu push
into that region (an attack on Xuan) occurred. In , Wu brought the Shu states of western
Huainan under its banner and occupied Chao. By that point Wu was in control of the Middle
and Lower Huai and had a protective cushion to the south. The scene was set for a dramatic
turn of events.
• 17 •
381–317
Chu’s focus on the east after the Wu invasion may have weakened its stance along the north-
ern frontier. Encounters with Han (to the north) and Wei (to the northeast), especially the
latter, led to a seesaw exchange of territories, with Wei even occupying parts of Fangcheng
Wai at times.
Meanwhile, there were problems far to the west, in Sichuan, where Ba68 launched an
attack in . Chu then built up a defensive line along the upper Han River (the Hanzhong
region69), but by the end of this phase an even more serious threat appeared in that quarter
as Qin pushed southward into Sichuan.70 Chu, however, continued to devote considerable
effort to expansion in the east, taking the Huaibei area around Xuzhou from Qi in .71
316 –278
There is no doubt that the single most significant event in the balance of power in Warring
States times was the Qin conquest of Sichuan (Ba and Shu) in .72 This creation of a Qin
base on Chu’s western flank could only portend a major struggle between the two. This
struggle began in earnest in , when the two traded blows in the Dan and Han valleys,
resulting in losses of Chu territory. Qin soon returned some of what it had taken (in Han-
zhong), but a decade later it colluded with Chu’s enemies in the plain, resulting in Chu’s loss
of portions of Fangcheng Wai. Within a few years the entire Dan valley was in Qin hands.
The Nanyang Basin was thus exposed, and much of it was soon taken from Chu. Before long,
however, Chu and Qin became allies for a time (–), and Chu took advantage of this
respite (in ) to reappropriate Huaibei lands earlier taken by Song. Southward,Yue lands in
Jiangdong were evidently in Chu hands by the end of the third century.73
Chu’s fate was sealed in , when hostilities with Qin resumed. Within three years what
remained to Chu of Hanzhong, the region south of it (Qianzhong 74), and the remainder of
the Nanyang Basin had been lost. This thoroughly exposed the Chu core, and Qin pressed on
and occupied it (including Ying) in .75 The Chu court then fled northward to Henan,
where it set itself up at the former seat of Chen.76 From there, Chu launched a counter-
offensive, but to little avail.
With the entire western realm lost, there was little option but to solidify and expand the
eastern one. Chu experienced some minor setbacks there, but one of its major additions was
the lands of Yue.77
277–223
Expansion in eastern Huaibei continued between about and , as Chu took over a
string of small states (Pi, Zhu, Xiao [small] Zhu, Fei). The ultimate target was the ancient and
proud state of Lu, which Chu erased from the map in .78 With virtually the entire east
now under its control, Chu shortly thereafter () moved its capital from Chen slightly
southward to Juyang.79 After a failed attempt to mobilize the surviving states of the plain
against the Qin juggernaut, Chu shifted its capital once again (in ) to a still more secure
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 18 •
location (Shouchun), on the southern bank of the Huai, near Zhoulai.80 In the meantime,
Qin had put an end to the Zhou royal house in and then in a few short years (–)
conquered the principal powers of the plain (Han, Zhao, and Wei). This provided Qin with
a base from which to begin an assault on Chu’s haven in the east, the approaches to which had
been left exposed by the move to Shouchun. Qin defeated a Chu force in western Huaibei
(). Chu managed one final victory the following year and even launched a counteroffen-
sive into Hubei, but Qin responded with a march into Huaibei and then on to Shouchun,
which fell in . A last-ditch Chu stand was made in Huainan, but to no avail, and the Chu
state (but by no means its memory) came to an end.
Figure 1.4 Map of Anhui region [by Zhong Yin, Tan Xiaodong, Barry Blakeley]
• 19 •
Chu in Jiangnan
Analysts in much later times offered rather confident assessments concerning the geogra-
phy of Chu expansion below the Yangtze, ones that have heavily influenced modern archae-
ological analysis.81 Nevertheless, various factors complicate the issue.82
There are chronologically widely spaced references to Chu control over Yue groups pre-
sumed to have been situated in Hunan, one from the seventh century (Spring and Autumn
period)83 and two from the early fourth century (Warring States period).84 However, the
seventh-century account smacks heavily of postfacto hagiography, is historiographically sus-
pect, and is improbable from a chronological standpoint;85 and with respect to all allusions to
Yue groups there are serious problems in locating them and related place-name clues.86 Two
other allusions to Chu activity in Jiangnan (dating to the sixth century) are no more helpful.87
In sum, there is precious little textual evidence to go on in tracing Chu activity in Jiang-
nan, and most of what is available is of questionable help. The most that can be said is that it
is reasonable to assume Chu activity below the Yangtze intensified after the crisis of the Wu
invasion at the end of the sixth century.88
Conclusion
In general terms, the territorial history of Chu was as follows: just before the turn of the
seventh century Chu set out on what was to be a three-century campaign of expansion.
There were setbacks, but when opposition stiffened in one quarter, Chu simply shifted its
attention to others. The first objective was to create a sphere of influence around the Bend
of the Han, a task that was completed by the early seventh century. Chu then immediately set
out to gain control of the Nanyang Basin and the approaches to it (Fangcheng Wai). The next
targets were the Upper Huai region and western Huainan. This brought on an inevitable
conflict with Wu, resulting in the most serious crisis for Chu in Spring and Autumn times.
Basic recovery was relatively quick, however, and Chu set out to solidify its control over
Fangcheng Wai, to regain its eastern territories, and to expand upon them.
The age of expansion faltered in the early fourth century, eventually leading to the loss of
Fangcheng Wai, thereby focusing Chu attention on the east. The penultimate struggle (with
Qin) began in the late fourth century, leading to the losses of Hanzhong, the Nanyang Basin,
Fangcheng Wai, and eventually (in ) the heartland as well. Shifting its base to the north-
east, there followed intense efforts to expand in Huaibei in order to create a defensible haven.
Within decades, however, the capital had to be moved still farther east, and Qin then nibbled
away at what territory remained to Chu and swallowed the last morsel in .
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 20 •
2
Chu Culture
An Archaeological Overview
Xu Shaohua
• 21 •
Emergence of a Chu Culture
Middle and late Spring and Autumn period burials provide the clearest evidence for the
beginning of a distinct Chu culture, although the interpretation of this evidence—tomb
structure and the sets, shapes, decor, and technology of ritual bronzes—by archaeologists con-
tinues to be a subject of debate.
Chu tombs, like those of the north, generally consisted of vertical pits without mounds
or ramps (entrance passageways). Bodies were placed in double (inner and outer) wooden
coffins. Unlike the tombs of the north, Chu tombs—at least large elite tombs—were oriented
to the east.5 The majority of the smaller tombs, on the other hand, were oriented to the
south.6 In northern tombs, the heads of the bodies were generally oriented to the north, with
the exception of Qin tombs, in which heads were oriented to the west.
Early Spring and Autumn period ritual vessels were arranged in typical Zhou-style sets
consisting of a ding (a cauldron with legs for cooked meats and stews) and a gui (a round,
lidded vessel on a square base for cooked grains). By the middle Spring and Autumn period
the gui vessel had been replaced by a fu (a flat, rectangular-shaped grain vessel). The number
of ding vessels, considered a status symbol, also varied. In the north, ding usually came in odd-
numbered sets, whereas in the Chu region most of them are found in even-numbered sets.7
Besides the ding and fu, the Chu ritual set included, as in the north, a pan (large round bowl
for liquids) and yi (a tureen-style vessel for liquids), as
well as a zhan (a squat, lidded bowl) and yufou (a squat
urn), both unlike northern types. By the late Spring
and Autumn period a dui (a bowl and lid forming a
sphere with legs above and below) frequently re-
placed the use of a zhan in Chu tombs. This also
occurred in the north, but with less frequency.8
As the vessel sets changed in composition, so, too,
did their shape and decor, resulting in the emergence
of a distinct Chu style of vessel. We see, for example,
in the Xiasi tombs of Xichuan, Henan, a number
of unique vessels. Most outstanding was a set of ding
vessels with flat bottoms, concave sides, high, out-
ward-curving “ear”-style handles, and numerous
ornate flanges. This type of ding was called shengding.
Another unique Chu ding is called a shiding—charac-
terized by its three legs and deep, round belly, a lid,
and vertical “ear”-style handles. Other unusual ves-
sels include a round-bellied, small-mouthed guan-
yuding with upright handles (with an upper section
resembling a gui but the lower section consisting of
Figure 2.1 Classic Chu tomb [courtesy of three short feet like a zhan vessel); a spherical dui
Xu Shaohua] vessel with three feet on the lower half and round or
Xu Shaohua
• 22 •
Figure 2.2 Late middle Spring and
Autumn vessels with Chu characteristics
from Zhaojiahu, Jinjiashan, Tomb
[courtesy of Xu Shaohua]
animal knobs on the upper half; a round-bodied, flat-bottomed yufou with flanges, handles,
and whorl patterns on the shoulders; and a he vessel (similar to a teapot) with a handle, three
feet, and an animal-shaped spout.
Before the middle Spring and Autumn period, Chu bronzes were largely of utilitarian
character with little surface decoration. Over time the decor became increasingly sophisti-
cated so that by the time of the Xiasi burial, bronzes were covered with elaborate designs: we
see strange beasts climbing the sides, zoomorphic designs on the knobs, feet, and handles, as
well as highly ornate flanges. Later tombs in Chu client states such as Cai in Shouxian, Anhui,
and Zeng in Suixian, Hubei, reveal vessels clearly influenced by this ornate style.9
Also prior to the middle Spring and Autumn period, the bronze decor was typical of the
north, with patterns Chinese archaeologists describe as the “ragged curve” pattern, the
“descending fish-scale” pattern, and the coarse “interlaced hydra” pattern. Later the decor be-
came more detailed and unique. We find on Chu vessels an intricate interlaced hydra pattern,
a coiled serpent pattern, and “cloud-
in-triangle” patterns joined by “twisted
rope” and “banana leaf ” patterns.
During the late Spring and
Autumn period we see an increasing
tendency toward even greater intri-
cacy and complexity in such designs
as the “dragon-phoenix” and “beast-
bird” patterns, which can be found in
sites in Zhaojiahu, Xiasi, or Shanwan
in Xiangyang, Hubei.
Chu Culture
• 23 •
Chu bronze vessels, like earlier Zhou bronzes and contemporary northern vessels, were at
first cast in combined or section molds. In the Xiasi burials we find the use of lost-wax and
soldering techniques evident in the open-work interlaced coiled dragon decor. The Chu
Xiong Shen zhan of the Freer Gallery is a result of these new techniques.
By the end of the Spring and Autumn period Chu artisans began to inlay bronzes with
copper, turquoise, and lacquer. A yufou from Xiasi, for example, is covered with inlaid copper
animals.
Xu Shaohua
• 24 •
Warring States Period Developments
As the territory under Chu political dominance expanded to the south and east, so, too, did
the repertoire of distinctive features employed by Chu artisans. These features are evident in
the structures of tombs believed to be occupied by members of the Chu elite, the ritual sets
and other burial goods found in the tombs, and the decor and technology exhibited in the
burial goods.
Tombs in the north did not typically include mounds and ramps, although this tendency
changed during the Warring States period. Tombs associated with Chu elite, however, often
included large mounds, possibly signifying social rank, and pronounced ramps. Chu burial
chambers tended to be larger and deeper, with the sides of the pit terraced and sloping
downward—and with the number of terraces or steps increasing with the social rank of the
occupant. The outer coffin was divided into sections along the sides, head, and feet, for the
placement of mortuary offerings. There could be as many as nine compartments as in Chu
King You’s tomb (Shouxian, Anhui).16
The greatest change in burial goods was the decreasing emphasis placed on bronze and the
increased use of iron, lacquer, and wooden objects.17 The standard ritual sets of bronze ves-
sels were replaced with lacquerware or
imitation bronze vessels made out of
pottery painted in red and black
designs typical of bronzes: cloud,
lozenge, interlaced hydra, bow, and
thunder patterns. Sets of these vessels
included the ding, dui, and hu (tall
curvilinear, small-mouthed vase for
liquids) combination or the ding, fu,
and hu combination. Either might be
paired with a pan or yi. By the late
Warring States period the fanghu and
he replaced the standard dui and fu set.
Also during this period we see the
appropriation by the lower elite of rit-
ual sets formerly limited to the upper
elite. These sets not only increased in
number, but in the variety of vessel
types included as well.18
The inner coffins were brightly
painted with lacquer and the com-
partments were filled with painted
Figure 2.5 Classic Chu painted pottery, late middle Warring
lacquer earcups, he, zun (cylindrical
States period, Jiangling, Jiudian, Tomb . Clockwise from
upper left: ding, hu, fu (2 views), dui, hu [courtesy of Xu vases with bulbous midsections and
Shaohua] flared mouths), dou (round, lidded
Chu Culture
• 25 •
bowls on a pedestal), zu (altar tables), zhenmushou (tomb guardians), and bird-and-tiger drum-
stands. As the bronzes that remained became plainer in decor, the lacquers exhibited a fusion
of red, yellow, and gold geometric designs, animal or phoenix patterns, or whorl patterns
against a black background. Lacquer was applied in repeated layers over cores of wood, bam-
boo, leather, and hemp cloth. Artisans might add appliques of gold or bronze (features found
both in Jiangling and Anhui sites) or prick designs through the surface.19 Other colors, such
as blue, green, and white, were used more sparingly but can be seen on a zither found in
Xinyang (pl. ) and a round box found in Baoshan (pl. ) (both sites are in the Jiangling
region). A multicolored lacquer screen, discovered in Wangshan, Jiangling, consists of fifty-one
finely carved and painted animals (pl. ).
In a strip around the Baoshan lacquer box are painted five scenes depicting men in
chariots, trees, flying birds, and standing human figures.20 The execution of these figures sug-
gests artisan links with the silk paintings of men with dragons and phoenixes found in Chu
tombs of the Chen Jia Dashan site in Changsha.21 The design and weave of colorful silk fab-
rics found both in Jiangling and Changsha area tombs also reinforces the suggestion of links
between the artisans of the two regions.
The number and quality of iron objects discovered in the Chu-dominated region has led
scholars to suggest that China’s earliest center for smelted iron may have been a Chu oper-
ation. Artisans in northern Hunan not only worked with iron but were capable of making
carbonized steel.22
The material culture of the Chu-occupied territory during the Warring States period
reflected great social change—a departure from Zhou-dominated patterns of ritual usage to
the development of its own style, itself a clever amalgam of borrowed decor and technology.
Although the political elite of Chu might be credited with bringing these characteristics
together into something Chinese archaeologists can identify as Chu culture, the fact remains
that Chu culture was a combination of many mini-regional patterns of use and fashion (cul-
tures). We see that while Chu artisans homogenized their manipulation of regional features
into a Chu style, regional variations continued to persist.
Xu Shaohua
• 26 •
Yicheng County Tomb Sites Shang Cai County
Chu Huangcheng 31 Xichuan County Cai Gucheng 63
Guojiagang 32 Xiasi 50
33
Tomb Sites
Gulougang Maoping 51
Ye County 64
Heshangling 52
Tomb Sites
Huaiyang County
Jingmen County Nanyang County
Pingliangtai 65
Jishan 34 Xiguan 53
Guodian 35 Shang Cai County 66
Xiangyang County
Baoshan 36
Shanwan 54
Jiangling County
Yutaishan 37 The Upper Huai
Handong
Balingshan 38 Settlement Sites
Settlement Sites
Taihuiguan 39 Xinyang County
Sui County
Tianxingguan 40 Chu Wangcheng 67
Anju 55
Wangshan 41 Huangchuan County
Yunmeng County
Tengdian 42 Huang Gucheng 68
Chu Wangcheng 56
Mashan42
Gushi County
Tomb Sites
Dangyang County Liao Gucheng 69
43 Leigudun 57
Zhaojiahu
Huaibin County
Yicheng County Eastern Hubei Qisi Gucheng 70
Luojiashan 44
Settlement Sites
Luogang 45 Tomb Sites
Echeng County
Weigang 46 Xinyang County
E Wangcheng 58
Changtaiguan 71
Daye County
The Nanyang Basin Luoshan County
Caowang Zuicheng 59
Settlement Sites Tianhu 72
Xichuan County Tomb Sites
Zhenyang County
Longcheng 47 Echeng County
Suzhuang 73
Siwan 47 Baizifan 60
Gushi County
Xixia County Baishizidi 74
Fangcheng Wai
Xiyi 48
Settlement Sites
Dinghe 48
Wuyang County
Neixiang County East Bugeng 61 Huaibei and Huainan
Gulicheng 48 Tomb Sites
Xiangcheng County
Shucheng County 75
Nanyang County West Bugeng 61
Shencheng 48 Huailin County 76
Huaiyang County
Xiangyang County Chencheng 62 Fanchang County 77
Dengcheng 49
Chu Culture
• 27 •
Shou County Wuxi City ( Jiangsu) Pingjiang 93
Cai Zhao Hou mu 78 Eling Jun, Wuxi 86 Mayang 93
79
Chu Yu Wang mu Taoyuan 93
Wu County
Cili 93
Huainan County Heshan 87
Cai Sheng Hou mu 80 Tomb Sites
Wujin County
Hunan sites
Liuhe County 81 Menghe 88
Yueyang 94
Changfeng County Shaoxing County (Zhejiang) Changde 94
Yanggong tomb complex 82 Fenghuangshan 89
Chenzhou 95
Zixing 96
Qianshan County 83 Shanghai City
Mayang 97
Jiading 90
Qingjiang County ( Jiangsu) Guzhang 98
Gaozhuang mu 84
Changsha 99
Jiangnan
Liuchengguo 100
Settlement Sites
Niuxingshan 101
Jiangdong Northern Hunan sites
Tomb Sites Shimen 91 Jiangxi sites
Suzhou City ( Jiangsu) 92
Xiangyin Pingxiang 102
Huqiu 85 93
Linli Xinjian 102
Hanxi
There are numerous settlements and tombs in the Hanxi region dating from the early Spring
and Autumn period to the late Warring States period. The more important settlement sites
include those in Jiangling, Dangyang, Qianjiang, and Yicheng Counties. Thousands of tombs
are distributed in the vicinity of these settlements, of which over one thousand have been
excavated. The most important tomb complexes are listed in the table. For the Spring and
Autumn period the settlements and accompanying tombs are concentrated in Dangyang and
Yicheng, and for the Warring States period, in the Jiangling area.
Before mid-Spring and Autumn times the cultural features in this area are rather varied.
For instance, while the hilly, western portion shows a strong Ba/Shu cultural influence (cul-
tures centered in Sichuan), the lower hill areas and riverine plains exhibit more Central Plains
features. It was only from the middle Spring and Autumn period on that the distinctive Chu
features described above become more apparent and extended throughout the region.
Xu Shaohua
• 28 •
realm. This was undoubtedly a result of the early (Western Zhou) development of the area,
but it was also related to the strategic importance of the area in terms of Chu military actions
to the north (Fangcheng Wai) and east (Huai valley). The major tombs excavated to date in
this area (over two hundred) are distributed mainly in relation to the Longcheng, Dengcheng,
and Shencheng settlements. These tombs are among the earlier and most elaborate of the over
five thousand Chu tombs excavated to date. In fact, the Xiasi complex is the single most
important tomb group so far found, a function of both its largely undisturbed state and the
quality and diagnostic importance of the contents.103 This seems to have been the cemetery
of the notable Wei lineage (its most important tomb being that of the Lingyin Wei Zipeng).
Handong
The archaeological record for the northern segment of Handong extends from the Western
Zhou period up through the Warring States period. Until the middle Spring and Autumn
period the material remains in this area clearly follow the Central Plains cultural pattern. But
from the middle Spring and Autumn period, some characteristics similar to Chu culture
appear there, albeit with some distinctive features.104 This can be seen in the tomb structure
and the composition and shapes of ritual vessel sets in tombs and of Leigudun. Known
settlement sites here include Anju in Suixian, which was probably the capital of Sui. Farther
Figure 2.6 Map of Lower Hanxi and Middle Yangtze valley regions [by Zhong Yin, Tan Xiaodong, Barry
Blakeley]
Chu Culture
• 29 •
south, Chu Wangcheng, in Yunmeng, appears to have been an important Chu outpost during
the Eastern Zhou period.
Eastern Hubei
Before late Spring and Autumn times eastern Hubei fell within what is generally considered
to be the Yue cultural pattern, but thereafter Chu characteristics become apparent. The prin-
cipal Chu-related settlement sites, all of Eastern Zhou date, are E Wangcheng in Echeng, and
Caowang Zuicheng in Daye. Particularly notable is the mining complex at Tonglushan in
Daye, which must have been a major source of copper for the Chu smelters.105 Some Chu-
style tombs here may date to as early as late Spring and Autumn times, but most are of
Warring States date.106 That some of these are from the late Warring States period suggests
continued Chu presence in this area after the fall of the Hanxi heartland to Qin in . How-
ever, few of the Warring States tombs contained complete ritual bronze sets, and thus the
majority of the tombs in these areas, with the exception of Baizifan tomb , at Echeng,
belonged to commoners. In these tombs we find ceramic sets (composed of ding, dui, and hu
or ding, he, and hu) mimicking bronze forms, and lacquered wood zhenmushou sculptures and
tiger-and-bird sculpted drumstands. The frequency of the ceramic and lacquer ware suggests
a cultural similarity with the Hanxi heartland.
Fangcheng Wai
Before Chu penetration into this region, the material culture, including that of the states of
Chen, Cai, and Ying, was the same as that of the Central Plains. See the list of important
archaeological sites for the numerous important settlement and tomb sites with Chu charac-
teristics in this region. Some scholars believe that the size, structure, and date of the tomb at
Yexian may indicate that it is a royal tomb. The area became part of the Chu cultural sphere
rather more slowly than it entered the Chu political realm.107 Politically, even though Chu
power penetrated into the region in middle Spring and Autumn times, intensive Chu influ-
ences in material culture are observable only during the mid- to late Warring States period.
Xu Shaohua
• 30 •
Since Cai moved to the middle Huai (Zhoulai) area in the early fifth century, a consider-
able number of its remains have been unearthed there. Representative of these are the Cai
Zhao Hou tomb in Shouxian and the Cai Sheng Hou tomb in Huainan. Some analysts have
considered these tombs to be representative of Chu culture, but while they do exhibit some
Chu features, the Central Plains tradition is even more evident, as are some Wu cultural
elements. Farther south, in Liuhe on the northern banks of the Yangtze, are several late Spring
and Autumn to early Warring States tombs that, judging from both the vessel shapes and their
inscriptions, probably belong to Wu.
Artifacts from this region that clearly belong to the Chu culture include the E Jun tallies109
and the Ying Dafu weigh-scale.110 There are over twenty important Chu-related tombs in the
area. From a diagnostic standpoint the royal tomb of Chu King You in Shouxian is under-
standably the most important. It is also significant that the bronze and ceramic ritual sets
found in this region are quite similar to those found in the areas of earlier Chu capitals in
Hanxi and at Chencheng.111 There are, however, some marked distinctions that suggest cul-
tural differences. Certain materials prevalent in the Hanxi area, such as the long-necked
ceramic hu and the lacquer zhenmushou and drumstands, for example, are not found here.
As for the Huaibei region, the Si and Yi valleys originally were within the political and
cultural spheres of Lu and a number of small Eastern Yi states. Chu cultural influences only
appear in middle to late Warring States times, and specifically Chu materials such as the
“high” fou and Chu coins have been found in southern Shandong at Taian and in Fei
County.112
Jiangdong
Originally this region was within the Wu/Yue cultural sphere.113 The archaeological remains
of the area support a late fourth century infiltration of the area by Chu. There may even have
been earlier Chu influence, as evidenced by bronzes found in the early Warring States (late
fifth century) tomb at Huqiu in Suzhou, Jiangsu (see the list), which bear some Chu charac-
teristics, although generally they are of Wu/Yue style. However, fully Chu materials do not
appear until late Warring States times, as clearly exhibited in the Eling Jun bronzes found in
Wuxi at Qianzhou, Jiangsu. Other tombs containing characteristic Chu materials generally
date to after the conquest of Yue. Two of these are particularly noteworthy: the Heshan tomb
contained thirty-three Chu-style bronze vessels; the inscription on one of them showed that
it was the possession of a Chu personage, Chu Shuzhisun Tu Wei. The late Warring States
Fenghuangshan tomb produced a ceramic ritual vessel set (consisting of ding, dui, and hu),
bronze weapons, and lacquer and wooden ware, all characteristically Chu. These tombs also
yielded Wu/Yue-style materials (such as ceramic geometric-patterned guan and proto-
porcelain vessels). Possibly because Chu did not enter the Jiangdong region until long after
its political peak, its culture did not fully replace local tendencies here.114
Jiangnan
Before Chu features began to infiltrate the Jiangnan region in late Spring and Autumn times,
most of the region south of the Yangtze River belonged to the Yue cultural sphere except for
Chu Culture
• 31 •
the material culture of northwestern Hunan, which had Ba cultural features. Chu features did
not become extensive until the early Warring States era.115 Approximately percent of the
three thousand Chu tombs of the Jiangnan region excavated to date are located in Hunan.
Not many date to Spring and Autumn times, and few of these are elite burials, but from the
middle Warring States period on, there is a heavy concentration of both Chu tombs and
settlement sites, especially in northern Hunan. Significant tombs, some of considerable size,116
are distributed across a broad area—from Yueyang and Changde in northern Hunan, as far
south as the foot of the Nanling range, west to Mayang and Guzhang, and, beyond Hunan,
east to Pingxiang and Xinjian in Jiangxi. The heaviest concentration, however, is in the cen-
trally located Changsha area, which contains about as many tombs as the Chu heartland in
Hubei.
These apparently Chu sites had a number of features unique to the Hunan region. For
example, the Jiangnan ceramic ritual sets are generally composed either of ding, dui, and hu or
of ding, he, and hu, with the fu form, so prevalent in Hubei and Henan, little in evidence. Util-
itarian ceramic sets consist largely of li, guan, dou, and yu, with a total absence of the long-
necked hu so typical of the Hubei heartland region. Moreover, in Hunan Chu tombs we find
many balance weights of a type seldom found elsewhere in the Chu sphere. Probably the
most famous Chu artifacts emerging from Hunan are the texts and banners on silk found at
Changsha.
Despite the many Chu settlements and tombs, Chu, Yue, and Ba traits coexisted in the
same locales for quite some time. For instance, tombs of both Chu and Yue types are found
in the same mortuary complexes, in Xiangxiang117 and Zixing,118 for example, in both late
Spring and Autumn and Warring States times. We even find artifacts of both cultures in the
same tomb. A similar case is found for Chu and Ba tombs: in the northwest (west of the Xiang
River), the Xupu burial ground has both Ba and Chu tombs,119 and tombs at Guzhang120
have Ba and Chu goods mixed together.
As a final note, the large volume of late Warring States Chu materials in the Jiangnan
region suggests that it remained under Chu control even after the loss of the northern heart-
land to Qin in .121
Conclusion
The above survey has shown that the material culture of Chu underwent a transformation
—from one closely tied to the Central Plains to one with distinctive traits derived largely from
the various neighboring regions with which Chu interacted and/or incorporated. The label
“Chu culture” can, with justification, be applied to a complex of distinctive traits widely
found within the Chu political realm. We must keep in mind, however, that within the differ-
ent regions of the Chu state, local cultural characteristics survived.
Xu Shaohua
• 32 •
3
Chu Art
Link between the Old and New
Je nny F. So
• 33 •
entrenched Bronze-Age tradition to the liberating variety of the Han and subsequent periods.
Heir to the ritual legacies of the Shang and Zhou kings in the north and rooted in the native
customs of the south, Chu art served as a geographical and temporal link between the ancient
Shang-Zhou traditions and the subsequent Han regimes, as well as a herald for later Chinese
artistic trends.
Figure 3.3 Bronze altar table from Xiasi [courtesy of Hamilton Photography and Film Co.]
J e n n y F. S o
• 34 •
meters tall, weighs . kilograms, and is also inscribed with characters;5 a rectangular
bronze altar table measuring by by . centimeters and weighing . kilograms
(fig. .); and probably two large wine containers like the pair recovered from an adjacent
tomb. In providing large numbers
of bronze ritual vessels and musi-
cal instruments in burials, sixth-
century Chu nobles were follow-
ing a venerable tradition spanning
over a thousand years during the
Shang and Zhou periods.
Chu’s contribution to this tra-
dition emerges in the distinctive
ornamental style of these vessels,
most obviously the intertwined
serpentine configurations and the
addition of animals on the walls or
bases of vessels.6 Although animal
accents on vessels may be traced
back to the Western Zhou period, Figure 3.4 Bronze zun-pan from Zeng Hou Yi tomb, Suixian,
turning them into the complex Hubei [after Hubeisheng bowuguan , color plate ]
openwork and intertwined orna-
ments on the Xiasi bronzes seems to be a Chu trait. These creatures clamber up the sides of
the large tripods, the altar table, and the wine containers, where they also serve as supports
below. On the top and sides of the altar table, a dense and wormy openwork of serpentine
creatures forms the sole decoration. The production of this intricate openwork probably
inspired the development of a new casting technique—the lost-wax method—to supplement
the traditional section-mold casting technique used since ca. . To date, the bronzes
from Xiasi are the earliest undisputed examples of Chinese bronzes that applied the lost-wax
technique in their production, and later examples using the same technique are mostly asso-
ciated with Chu.7
Chu continued to follow this tradition for another hundred years. A richly furnished
tomb opened in near Leigudun in Suixian, Hubei Province, contained hundreds of
bronze vessels, a set of sixty-five bronze bells, weapons, and decorative accessories, weighing
a total of almost ten tons.8 The tomb belonged to a Marquis Yi of Zeng, a minor vassal of
Chu, who was interred around . The size of the bronze industry that would have been
required to produce all of the marquis’ bronzes—the manpower to handle the mining, smelt-
ing, mold-making, and pouring of bronze in such staggering quantities—reflects the high
status and priority placed on ritual bronzes in Chu circles during the sixth and early fifth cen-
turies . If a politically insignificant vassal of Chu could have all this buried with him, the
contents of a contemporaneous Chu ruler’s tomb would be formidable indeed.
Lost-wax casting, already evident a hundred years earlier at Xiasi, reached spectacular
heights on a bronze zunpan buried with Zeng Hou Yi at Suixian (fig. .). The elaborate ser-
Chu Art
• 35 •
Figure 3.5 Bronze bo bell from Zeng Hou Yi tomb, Suixian
[courtesy of Avery Press]
J e n n y F. S o
• 36 •
fifty-nine ritual bronzes and a single bronze handbell, but eighty-one vessels and thirteen
musical instruments in lacquered wood. Compared to the fashionable designs and colorful
palette of the lacquers, the bronzes from Baoshan, with few exceptions, appear routine and
dull.19
Not even the royal furnishings from the tomb of one of the last Chu kings at Lisan’gudui
in Shouxian, Anhui Province, can counter the trend established during the fourth century.
The grave, opened in , was severely plundered.20 Inscriptions on the bronzes indicate that
they belonged to the last Chu kings who resided at Shouxian, their capital until it was cap-
tured by Qin troops in . In contrast to Chu tombs of the preceding century, bronze
ritual vessels again dominated the inventory of this third-century royal burial. Like the vessels
from Xiasi and Suixian, the Shouxian bronzes are also monumental in scale, but unlike their
earlier counterparts, they are all crudely cast, thin, and light. They seemed to strive only for
the appearance of status, but nothing of its substance. Just like the kings who commissioned
and owned them, the Shouxian bronzes are mere shadows of their former magnificence, and
they remain poor cousins of the richly decorated lacquers and silks that came to replace
them. By the beginning of the early second century it was clearly acceptable for a Chu noble-
woman like the Lady of Dai to go to her grave with only a single bronze mirror among hun-
dreds of lacquered wooden vessels and accessories.21
The greatly diminished role of ritual bronzes in Chu burials signals a shift in Chu loyal-
ties. In their quest for power and peer recognition, the early Chu rulers subscribed to tradi-
tional Zhou values and rituals as signs of their power and status. Confident in their political
and territorial success, later Chu rulers returned to native customs as symbols of their unique
tradition and achievements. Local products of the Chu domain—the multicolored lacquers
and luxurious silks—flourished under royal patronage as they came to replace bronze as
prized items in burials. Chu’s extensive experience with wood-working in making coffins,
tables, beds, vessels, and other tomb furnishings encouraged the development of joinery tech-
niques that became the foundations of China’s furniture industry in subsequent dynasties.22
Chu Art
• 37 •
burial chamber of Zeng Hou Yi at Suixian was subdivided into four separate chambers to
denote different aspects of the marquis’ daily life: servants/attendants in one side chamber,
weapons and battle regalia in another, the marquis himself with more attendants or consorts
in the third, and an impressive array of wine and food vessels and musical instruments for state
and religious ceremonies in the largest central chamber, where the marquis would have held
court.23 Tomb at Changtaiguan, dating to the early fourth century, is organized in a similar
way, divided into six separate chambers, with the deceased occupying the central chamber and
musical instruments and vessels in the antechamber. These are the modest beginnings of a
trend that eventually led to the construction of Qin Shihuangdi’s mausoleum at Lishan, out-
side Xi’an, and the brick tombs of the Han dynasty, all of which were virtual underground
structures that duplicated the deceased’s earthly palaces or living quarters.
The sixth- and fifth-century burials at Xiasi and Suixian were all accompanied by human
victims, a custom Chu had retained from late Shang times.24 Twenty-one women accom-
panied Zeng Hou Yi to his grave at Suixian, perhaps his favorite consorts, musicians, and
dancers, to ensure that he would be well entertained and attended to in his new life. By the
fourth century wooden figures—not humans—were buried with Chu nobles (pl. ).These
wooden figures are the immediate predecessors of the magnificent terra-cotta army of the
first emperor of Qin, as well as the painted earthenware dancers, soldiers, and entertainers of
Han, all of which were placed in their masters’ tombs to duplicate the circumstances of their
earthly existence.
Although Zeng Hou Yi’s bronze vessels and musical instruments in the central chamber
may have been appropriate for grand, courtly occasions, entertainment of a more intimate
nature was apparently enjoyed in his private chambers, because a second and smaller group of
musical instruments, together with eight attendants, were buried with him in the adjacent
chamber.25 The marquis apparently preferred more intimate chamber music over the Wag-
nerian sound of the full orchestra in the ceremonial hall.
Two incense burners, not grand ritual bronzes, amused the marquis in his private cham-
bers. One of them is an openwork cylinder composed of intertwined serpents, a recurring
article in later Chu burials at Changtaiguan,Wangshan,Yutaishan, and Baoshan.26 The incense
burner is characteristic of fifth- to fourth-century Chu burials, suggesting that burning fra-
grant scents was a popular Chu custom. As a type, Chu incense burners are the ancestors of
the hill-censers found frequently in Han tombs in the north,27 and Chu custom may be held
partly responsible for this diagnostic Han artifact. Both the incense burners and smaller musi-
cal ensembles are evidence that daily pleasures and native delights were important aspects of
Chu life by the end of the fifth century. The rising prestige of Chu lacquers and silks is fur-
ther evidence of a preoccupation with self-indulgence. If following pompous Zhou customs
was necessary political protocol, more relaxed native pleasures were a personal Chu choice.
The preference for colorful objects was apparent even in early Chu art. Chu was among
the first Eastern Zhou states to exploit in a major way the potential of color in precious metals
or semiprecious stones in the decoration of ritual and luxury paraphernalia. Almost two hun-
dred thin sheets of gold foil with repoussé designs were recovered from the mid-sixth century
J e n n y F. S o
• 38 •
Figure 3.6 Painted coffin,
Baoshan [after Beijing b,
vol. , pl. ]
Chu tomb at Xiasi.28 They were affixed to wooden shields, chariot fittings, and armor for
decoration. Beside nearly a thousand pieces of gold foil and several cast gold garment hooks,
Zeng Hou Yi even had vessels cast in solid gold, one of them weighing over , grams (pl.
).29
Although few could afford the extravagance of solid gold vessels, many were able to enjoy
the luxury of colorfully inlaid bronzes. Chu seemed to be at the forefront of this development
as well, because the earliest groups of bronze vessels that consistently exploited the contrast-
ing colors of different metals and materials have also been recovered from Chu tombs. Tomb
at Xiasi contained several vessels decorated with feline figures inlaid in red copper;30 crushed
malachite, turquoise, and copper accented similar designs on the Suixian bronzes.31 By the
fourth century multicolored lacquers were painted directly on bronze surfaces while lac-
quered wooden articles, like the coffin from Tomb at Baoshan, began to resemble inlaid
bronze (fig. .). On a covered container from the same tomb, gold and silver inlays form the
patterns on the lid, while red lacquer coats the interior.32 Lavishly inlaid bronze vessels,
weapons, fittings, and personal accessories dominated tomb inventories from the fourth
century on, not just among burials in Chu territory, but throughout most of China.33 The
multicolors of copper, gold, silver, turquoise, and malachite on bronze were probably the only
effective means to rival the alluring palette used on painted lacquers and embroidered silks,
and the three art forms became inextricably entwined in each other’s developments.34
Seduced by glittering inlaid bronzes, luxuriously embroidered silks, and colorfully painted lac-
quers, the Warring States elite in the north and south surrounded themselves with every pos-
sible trapping of their worldly success. Ritual worship, the foundation of political power for
the Shang and early Zhou kings, became mere excuses for excessive display; courtly ceremony,
which reinforced that power, became the occasion for personal entertainment.
Chu Art
• 39 •
From Patterns to Pictures
Togethe r with this shift from religious ritual to urbane pleasures came an intensified inter-
est in the natural world. Neolithic and Shang inhabitants of the Yangtze River valley showed
a special leaning toward portraying naturalistic images. Crudely modeled earthenware sculp-
tures of animals—elephants, birds, turtles, dogs—and human beings were among the artifacts
recovered from a late Neolithic context in Hubei Province.35 Ritual bronze vessels in the
shape of animals dating from the Shang period have been repeatedly found in the same
region, and three-dimensional animals were often used as ornamental appendages on vessels
from the south.36 At the same time, the fantastic imagery that dominated Shang and early
Zhou bronze decoration continued in all art forms.
By the sixth century Chu art displayed a curious blend of the fantastic with the real.
The fabulous creatures on the monumental bronze hu or the altar table from Tomb at Xiasi
demonstrate the art’s links with the older Shang and early Zhou traditions (fig. .).37 By the
mid-fifth century more realistic figures emerged. In addition to bronze vessels with fantastic
animal handles and fabulous creatures supporting chimestones,38 the marquis’ tomb at Suixian
also included human figures sup-
porting the bell chime, their facial
features, clothing, and weapons de-
scribed in painted lacquer (fig. .).
During the fourth century, wooden
figures, representing attendants for
the deceased, became common
items in Chu tombs. The majority
were carved in simple blocky masses
with details of the garments and
accessories painted on;39 the more
elaborate ones were given real hair-
pieces and dressed in real silks to
resemble real people (pl. ).40
Chu’s blending of the fabulous
and real is also evident in animal
sculpture: a bronze crane-like bird
with majestically branching antlers
(fig. .), or a reclining deer in lac-
quered wood, both from Zeng Hou
Yi’s tomb (fig. .). The Yutaishan
excavations yielded a phoenix-like
J e n n y F. S o
• 40 •
Figure 3.8 Bronze antlered bird from Zeng Figure 3.9 Lacquered wooden deer from Zeng Hou Yi tomb
Hou Yi tomb [courtesy of Avery Press] [after Hubeisheng bowuguan , pl. ]
bird, made into a stemmed food container. Red, yellow, and gold colors on black described the
bird’s plumage and scaled body in detail; but an abstract pattern of diagonals and curls deco-
rate the stem and base. A close contemporary from Wangshan Tomb is a small openwork
screen composed of birds, leaping deer, and intertwined snakes (pl. ).
This mixing of realism and fantasy also occurs on two-dimensional designs. Chu painted
lacquer designs of the sixth and fifth centuries often copy contemporaneous bronze patterns
(pl. ). During the fourth century, they took on a calligraphic character directly linked to the
use of brush and paint. A wine cup in the Nelson Gallery of Art shows a spotted deer in
flying gallop in the center (fig. .). Its ear and hind leg extend in long abstract filaments to
echo those sweeping across the rest of the surface in strictly ornamental patterns. The broad
elements and scallops that punctuate the filaments are natural results of the viscous nature of
thick lacquer applied with a brush. The strokes of the lacquer-loaded brush produced delicate
filaments with fluctuating widths and tenuous volutes, another characteristic trait of callig-
raphy. Similar designs appear in the silk industry. A piece of embroidered silk from Tomb at
Mashan shows long-necked birds and dragons whose tails and crests also form long filaments
punctuated by broad elements and flourishes (fig. .).
By the end of the fourth century abstract design and descriptive elements were so
intricately enmeshed that one was virtually indistinguishable from the other. On the cover of
a lacquered box from Tomb at Baoshan, birds are all but lost among a complex scaffolding
of sweeping diagonals and curls (fig. .). In contrast, a simple descriptive scene fills the side
walls (pl. ). Figures wearing long robes stand in profile or with their backs to the viewer, as
others run or ride in horse-drawn carriages. Separating each group of figures are windblown
trees interspersed with flying birds above and running animals below. Although they are
Chu Art
• 41 •
Figure 3.10 Lacquered wooden cup
[courtesy of Nelson-Atkins Museum of
Art, Kansas City, Missouri. Purchase:
Nelson Trust]
J e n n y F. S o
• 42 •
roundel on the cover. Its mouth is wide open, as if in broad laughter, revealing a trim row of
teeth. One of its neatly manicured, clawed forelimbs extends in front of its chest as the other
wraps around its neck with double-jointed dexterity. The dragon’s thin body swings back in
a curve that echoes the round shape of the box, its two hind limbs and tail sweeping dramat-
ically upward to end in scrolls. Similar scrolls issuing from the back of its head and under its
belly fill the remaining ground.
This painted dragon presents an image that is at once a masterful design and an extra-
ordinarily real image. In this near-magical leap from abstract design to lively image, as well as
in the straightforward painting of figures in landscape, Chu art becomes the true link between
the past and the future. Between the ancient Shang and Zhou traditions that excelled in elab-
orate ornaments of undefinable character, and the Han and later periods’ profound involve-
ment with nature and its representation in two and three dimensions, spans the bridge that is
Warring States Chu sculpture and painting.
Chu Art
• 43 •
The branches terminate in multiarmed circles—the tall tree has eleven, the shorter tree nine.
Between the trees is a bird pierced by an arrow from an archer on the ground. The birds,
archer, trees, and radiating circles together suggest that the scene depicts the myth of the
archer Yi who saved the universe by shooting down the nine suns that appeared simulta-
neously in the sky one day.45
Another important document, dating from the third century, is an illustrated silk manu-
script in the Arthur M. Sackler collections.46 The text of this document is divided into two
sections. The first describes the natural order and Chu’s beliefs on the origins of the universe
and of their ancestors. The second focuses on the human order and the consequences of
man’s behavior in relation to Nature. Surrounding the text are twelve images depicting the
gods of the twelve months, each identified by the short caption next to it. At the corners of
the manuscript are plant motifs symbolic of the four seasons, rendered in green, red, white,
and black, the colors of the four cardinal points. The layout of the text with its images is con-
ceptually similar to that of the shi, or cosmograph.47 This manuscript is the earliest surviving
document where ancient Chu beliefs are recorded in writing, and illustrated systematically by
a set of deities associated with the cosmic scheme.
Although the identity and nature of some of the figures remain elusive, a few relate
directly to images in other media. One of them, the deity for the twelfth month, combines a
human head with antlered projections and a bird’s body (fig. .). A dark squiggly line
between his teeth suggests a snake. The deity of the twelfth month is a standing figure with
a square head, clawed hands, and bird-like legs; he, too, sports antler-like projections on his
head and a long squiggly creature between his teeth.
These images are reminiscent of bronze and lacquered wooden sculptures associated with
Chu. A sixth-century bronze animal with large round eyes squats with serpents coiled at its
feet and gripped between its teeth and front paws (fig. .).48 A similar creature comes from
Tomb at Changtaiguan, a kneeling feline with enormous blood-red eyes, long tongue,
antlers on its head, and clawed limbs clutching a black snake firmly between its teeth
Figure 3.13
Deity for the
twelfth month,
Chu Silk Manu-
script [courtesy of
Arthur M. Sackler
Foundation]
J e n n y F. S o
• 44 •
Figure 3.14 Bronze tomb figure from Xinzheng, Henan [cour-
tesy of the National History Museum, Taipei, Taiwan]
Chu Art
• 45 •
Figure 3.16 Detail of lacquered wooden
coffin from Zeng Hou Yi [after Hubeisheng
bowuguan n.d. (?), ]
J e n n y F. S o
• 46 •
decorated lacquers and silks. Their increased production challenged the bronze industry to
produce equally striking surfaces by inlaying with gold, silver, and semiprecious stones, with
the result that the fifth to third centuries gave us some of the most beautiful and colorful
designs in all of China’s Bronze Age.
In China’s early history of representational art, Chu was a leader in its unwavering com-
mitment toward portraying real and mythical images in two and three dimensions. Inspired
by the fabulous images in Chu art, China’s ancient myths and their gods began to appear
increasingly as subjects of reliefs and paintings. As Buddhism penetrated China during the
Han dynasty, this existing tradition provided a ready foundation for the depiction, in two and
three dimensions, of Buddhist stories and deities. Finally, as Chu tombs yielded some of the
earliest surviving writing instruments in China54 and, in its surviving lacquers and silk, pro-
vided evidence for artistic exploitation of the calligraphic properties of the brush, Chu may
be considered the nurturing ground for calligraphy and painting, the twin arts that were to
dominate China for the subsequent two thousand years.
Chu Art
• 47 •
Part II
State and
Society
4
Chu Society and State
Image versus Reality
A thorough understanding of historical institutions requires insight not only into their
structures but also into the actors who bring them to life. Accomplishing this for Chu
is impeded by several factors. Some of these relate to the study of early China, generally.
Others are peculiar to the investigation of Chu.
Most information concerning ancient Chinese social and political matters appears in
piecemeal fashion. Thus the researcher encounters hundreds of discrete pieces of data and
must then construct a general framework from them. Even on the relatively rare occasions
when one encounters a generalized statement, certain characteristics of ancient China’s his-
torical writing are cause for caution. The most crucial of these derive from the fact that
describing the past was viewed less as an exercise in presenting objective historical “truth” than
as an opportunity to instruct or entertain. This prompted the presentation of history in a
narrative form, including a heavy dose of oral discourse.1 All of this was accepted as reliable
historical fact in the traditional Chinese historiographical tradition (and, in most quarters, still
is today), but the critical scholar must always consider the issue of how much is embroidery
supplied by later hands. Another problem is that misconceptions had emerged by Han times.2
Overcoming these roadblocks requires a thorough reevaluation of all ancient Chinese texts—
a daunting task, and one that (despite some two millennia of effort) still has a long way to go.3
It should be noted also that we are hampered in tracing developments in Warring States times
by the meager and scattered nature of the available data (much of which was destroyed under
the Qin dynasty). As for the study of Chu, problems arise from the fact that while it lay in
the south, the compilers of the texts on which we rely (as well as later commentators) were
largely northerners.4 This resulted in a “Northern Bias” vis-à-vis the historical role and cul-
• 51 •
tural achievements of Chu, but at a more specific level it also meant that some distinctive
aspects of Chu culture simply were incomprehensible to many later writers.
The effect of these historiographical obstacles—along with the fact that critical study of
Chu is in its infancy—is that, below, we can offer only tentative conclusions on many points
and must concentrate on the Spring and Autumn period.5 The obvious place to start is with
the question of the extent to which Chu society and state conformed to the general pattern
of the time. In order to do so, we first take a short look at the essentials of that pattern.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 52 •
lineage also had an advantage in heading regencies, although the collateral lineages were
unlikely to sit idly by in such times.) There was, however, one factor that could offset the
inherent advantages of the main lineage: hereditary office tenure. By virtue of this, an office
originally held by a member of the main lineage might, when lineage segmentation occurred,
become the preserve of a collateral lineage.
Despite its importance, the kinship that formed the cement of the political order was
prone to decay over time. The major factor behind this was the communal nature of kinship,
by virtue of which the “assets” (ancestors, status, reputation, and wealth) of a lineage were the
common heritage of the entire membership. As a result, the particularistic interests of imme-
diate kinship groups (lineages) came to take precedence over more remote ties (to the clan as
a whole, remote ancestors, and the main lineage). In fact, these groups often sought to over-
shadow the lord (clan chief ).
An important ramification was that both the corporate tradition of the clan as a whole and
the special interests of lineages within it tended to limit the authority of rulers.13 Concretely,
it could be difficult—at a minimum—for a ruler to determine who was to serve under him
and in what capacity; at the maximum, there was always the danger of domination by kins-
men. Thus only a truly capable and strong-willed ruler had much chance of ruling and not
merely reigning. As a result, the personal qualities of rulers were an important ingredient in
the dynamics of state power.
With this general pattern in mind, we may now turn to a consideration of the degree to
which conditions in Chu matched it. We first consider some of the basic features of Chu state
and society.
Basic Features
In ancient Chinese society, xing were mega-kinship units tying together broad segments of
the elite, generally across the political boundaries of the territorial states.14 (For instance, the
granting of areas to kinsmen of the Zhou kings meant that a number of the local ruling
houses were branches of the Ji xing.) The question of the xing affiliation of the Chu royal
house has become enmeshed in debates over the nomenclature of rulership there.
According to both the Shiji and bronze inscriptions, the Chu ruling house belonged to the
Mi xing.15 The matter has been complicated, however, by the fact that “Xiong” appears in the
initial position in the names of Chu rulers, both in the Shiji and (according to most analysts)
in bronze inscriptions.16 It has been suggested that Xiong was the lineage (shi) name of the
main branch of the Chu ruling house.17 There are, however, no known examples of the
main lineage of a territorial state having a shi name.18 Some other explanation of Xiong,
therefore, must be sought. The most reasonable one is that it was an early Chu leadership title
(for the head of state, clan, or both), perhaps deriving from a sacrificial role involving wine.19
If this were the case, however, for most of Chu history its kings had at least two titles, because
the northern title “king” (wang) was adopted, temporarily in Western Zhou times and per-
manently from the late eighth century on.20 This is not inconceivable, because “Xiong” always
• 53 •
appears with a personal name (ming) and “Wang” with a posthumous name (shi). We may have
here, then, parallel usage of indigenous and northern titles, but with different functions. There
is, however, a further complication. Another title, ao (encountered first in connection with
Ruo Ao, mentioned below), existed. Originally this title may have alluded to the managing
of certain rituals (i.e., in ancestral rites 21), but after the adoption of the northern wang it seems
to have been reserved for those who ascended the throne but who (for various reasons) were
not considered legitimate rulers (and to whom no posthumous name was given).22 In sum,
the most that can be said at this point is that the xing of the Chu ruling house was Mi, that
Chu leaders may originally have borne titles arising from two distinct ritual roles, and that one
of these (xiong) persisted after the adoption of the northern wang, while the other (ao) was set
aside for use in specific circumstances.
The Chu succession system also has been the subject of much discussion.23 Two state-
ments in the Zuozhuan have been taken to indicate that the throne did not pass to the eldest
son:“Elevation [of an heir] in Chu ordinarily involves the youngest”24 and “That it must be
the youngest son who achieves the throne is the constant practice of Chu.”25 The problem is
that when we examine historical realities, there were no unambiguous cases of succession by
a younger son. In other words, succession was normally through the eldest son. How, then,
are the Zuozhuan statements to be understood? The answer is rather simple: they must be
considered in context, because both are preceded by qualifying statements (respectively,
“When the legitimate heir is set aside, causing dissension” and “When there is dissension in
the Mi xing”26). Thus these passages in fact do not allude to normal successions, but rather to
unusual circumstances.27 In this light, it is worthwhile recounting the following well-known
incident:28
King Gong had no consort29 and, although he had five beloved sons [by other
women], had designated none of them as his successor. He therefore held a great
sacrifice to the qun wang (hills and rivers, collectively) and prayed, saying:“I beg
that the spirits choose among these five one who will take charge of the rites of
the grains and soil [become ruler].” He then exhibited a jade disc (bi, symbol of
high rank) to the qun wang and said:“The one who worships directly before the
bi shall be the one chosen by the spirits. Who would dare to oppose this [ judge-
ment]?” When the ceremony was over, he and his Ji-xing concubine from Ba
secretly buried the bi in the courtyard of the great hall [of the ancestral temple].
He had the five sons fast and then enter to worship in order of age, beginning
with the eldest. [The future] King Kang stepped over [the spot where the bi was
buried], and [the future] King Ling (inadvertently) touched it with his arm,
while Zigan30 and Zizhe31 both missed it by a wide mark. [The future] King
Ping, who was very young, was carried in and [after being set down?] worshiped
twice, both times crushing the rope [of the bi]. Dou Weigui32 entrusted the boy
to [his son] Dou Chengran,33 saying,“This flouts propriety, and [in any case] the
decree [of the spirits] will be ignored.34 [From both angles,] Chu is surely in
danger!”
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 54 •
Here, then, we see exactly what the statements alluded to above really suggest: that a son
by the primary wife would normally succeed and that only when one was not available did
the possibility of choosing a younger son arise. Despite this, it has been suggested that Dou
Weigui’s complaint about the ignoring of “propriety” (i.e., accepted practice) means that, even
in the absence of a conventional heir, the eldest candidate should have been chosen. This is
probably based on the general assumption that the northern tradition emphasized seniority.35
We have seen, however, that this contradicts the passages cited above. It is more probable,
therefore, that the speaker is complaining about the means employed on this occasion (a form
of divination), rather than the result. If so, the implication would be that the king should have
designated an heir (regardless of relative age) on the basis of his own best judgment, rather
than relying on an appeal to the spirits.36
The Chu succession tradition, then, can probably be summarized as follows: the throne
normally went to a son of the primary wife (whether to the eldest being unknown); when
this was not possible or when there was social discord within the ruling house, there was a
proclivity to choose a younger son (even if by a concubine).
Turning to the lineages of Chu, they seem to have exhibited some peculiarities in their
internal dynamics. This is suggested by the absence of a northern practice—lineage heads
being alluded to by a formula (lineage =name+shi) implying that they represented or person-
ified the lineage as a whole.37 Second, it appears that lineage heads in Chu exerted less author-
ity over their kinsmen than was the case elsewhere.38 These characteristics of the Chu lineage
tradition may well relate to two other unusual circumstances. One is that Chu lineages did not
control large landed estates.39 The other is that major court offices were rarely (if ever) held
on a hereditary basis,40 perhaps in part due to an unusual tendency toward promotion through
the ranks.41 Thus Chu lineages had comparatively little in the way of common economic and
political heritage, and this probably reduced the authority of lineage heads. Lineages in Chu,
then, were less intensely “corporate” than those elsewhere, but the difference is only one of
degree, because they clearly functioned as political interest groups (as will be seen below).42
Compared to some (but not all) northern states, lineage segmentation was not highly
developed in Chu.43 Still, it did occur within the ruling house. The earliest collateral lineages
to emerge within it were the Dou and Cheng,44 conventionally labeled as the “Ruo Ao line-
ages,” in light of their descent from the ruler of that name (r. –).45 Two other collateral
lines appeared soon after, the Qu and Wei.46 The Qu lineage emanated from a son or brother
of King Wu (r. –).47 The standard view has been that the Wei lineage descended from
the ruler Fen Mao48 (r. –), but it may have had more ancient roots.49 Considerable time
passed before further collateral lines emerged: the Yang, descending from a son of King Mu
(r. –), and the Nang and Shenyin,50 emerging from descendants of King Zhuang
(r. –). Still later (in Warring States times) we encounter the Zhao lineage, stemming
from King Zhao (r. –) of the late Spring and Autumn period.51
Kinship groups unaffiliated with the royal house played only a very minor role in Chu pol-
itics in Spring and Autumn times.52 (In this respect Chu was quite similar to Lu and Song but
quite at variance with states such as Jin.53) It is interesting, too, that there were few inde-
pendent lineages that were clearly indigenous to Chu.54 This is probably a function of the
• 55 •
meager geographical proportions of Chu in its formative days (see Blakeley, chapter ). Quite
the contrary, the majority of nonroyal clan kindreds had alien roots, undoubtedly drawn to the
Chu court as its influence and conquests expanded.55 Already in Spring and Autumn times
there were examples from Chu’s major competitor states (Qi,56 Song,57 and Jin58), although
most had roots in states that Chu either had conquered or had reduced to clientage: Ruo,59
Shen,60 Xu,61 Chen,62 Zheng,63 Deng,64 Cai,65 Dao,66 and perhaps Fan.67 This phenomenon
persisted in Warring States times, as reflected in the late fourth century Baoshan materials.
There we encounter individuals from not only Ruo, Deng, Cai, Song, Chen, and Wu, but
especially (in terms of numbers) from Zhou and Huang.68 Despite their numbers, few mem-
bers of these lineages achieved high office in Chu. (This is the case also with men who them-
selves immigrated, the most noteworthy exception being Wu Qi, discussed below.69)
Turning to the political system, the apparatus of Chu governance was in most ways similar
to that found elsewhere, but with variations—mostly minor, but in one respect significant.70
With respect to nomenclature, a unique Chu title was moao. This has always been taken as a
state post (with unknown responsibilities71), but it has been suggested recently that the title
adhered to the person in charge of the ancestral rites of the Qu lineage.72 In any case, it has
long been noted that the suffix yin, reminiscent of Shang terminology (and equivalent to
ao 73), was common in Chu office titles. Most yin offices were of relatively minor signifi-
cance,74 with the exceptions of lingyin (a title unique to Chu) and its lieutenant posts (of the
Left, zuoyin, and Right, youyin).75 The lingyin originally may have been the field com-
mander,76 but by the seventh century it had assumed the function of prime minister, in charge
of both civil and military administration.77 The roles of the adjunct posts are not clear for the
Spring and Autumn period, but the zuoyin was an important office by the fourth century,
with broad responsiblities in the administration of justice.78 In contrast, the prefix si, character-
istic of the Zhou tradition, was somewhat less in evidence in Chu. In the textual sources we
find it only in the title sima (Master of the Horse or Minister of War) and related posts. At
least by the fourth century, however, there were also central offices such as sifeng (or sili 79), in
charge of ritual vessels and/or rites), and siyi (handling the royal wardrobe?),80 as well as local
posts responsible for punishments (sibai 81), city walls (sicheng 82), and military matters (sima 83).
There probably was at least some distinction between state and royal household admin-
istration (a rather advanced practice, as far as the development of bureaucracy is concerned).
It stands to reason, for instance, that offices such as the chamberlain (qinyin), various types of
tutors for royal heirs, and the Administrator of the Palace Stables ( gongjiuyin) were part of the
household. The latter had a counterpart in state administration—the Administrator of the
Central Stables (zhongjiuyin)—and the Chief Remonstrator (zhenyin) was presumably a state
post. In some cases the category is not readily apparent (e.g., taizai, Chief of Protocol;
gongyin,84 Administrator of Works), but it would not be surprising if precise separation of
public and private was not always made.
The distinctive features of the Chu sociopolitical scene indicated above were of only
superficial significance, as they had little if any impact on functional processes. In one respect,
however, governance in Chu was unique (at least among the larger states): in its relatively high
degree of centralization. Fundamental to this must have been the absence of large lineage
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 56 •
estates in the countryside (which so often served as local power bases elsewhere). This seems
to have been the case from the beginning, and as Chu expanded territorially (from the early
or mid-seventh century on), newly incorporated states were organized into xian (counties).85
These xian were border garrisons overseen by administrators (titled gong or yin), over whom
a considerable degree of central control was exercised. In fact, it is quite probable that credit
for the creation of this institution (which was to become central to the administrative struc-
ture of imperial times) belongs to Chu. In any case, it placed the Chu political system far in
advance of any other state (by some three centuries, even in the case of Qin) and must have
been a major factor in its rise to power and its success in territorial expansion. From the fifth
century, the practice of enfeoffment ( feng) did appear,86 and there was a late (third century)
case of the granting of massive territories to Prime Minister Huang Xie (known as Chun-
shen Jun). However, before those late days the terminology probably masked a quite different
reality, as the late fourth century Baoshan materials suggest a considerable degree of central
authority by that time.87 It should be mentioned, too, that there is a strong possibility the jun
(prefecture) also originated in Chu (in Warring States times). In a nutshell, Chu governance
—in the critical respect of centralization of power—lay on the cutting edge of developments
throughout much of Eastern Zhou times but perhaps experienced a setback in the final half
century (when centered in the east).
So far we have examined the Chu state and society on a fairly abstract level. A look at
some of the groups and personalities involved can serve to bring things more to life. In doing
so, it might be expected that we would begin at the top of the hierarchy, with the kings. But
while it is commonly held that the Chu kings (at least of Spring and Autumn times88) were
unusually powerful individuals (in comparison to their peers in other states), the tradition of
lineage participation in the exercise of power placed serious limits on royal authority in Chu.
Figure 4.1 Drawing of wooden figurines with facial tattooing from Changsha, Hunan [after Barnard
vol. , p. ]
• 57 •
Before examining the kings, therefore, we begin with the role of lineages, turn to some of the
leading personalities they produced, and only then take up the kings.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 58 •
Implicit in this overview of the role of lineages is the fact that leading figures in them
often dominated the court scene. Some of them—virtually all of whom held the post of
prime minister—should be introduced in greater detail.
Prime Ministers
All but two of Chu’s prime ministers came from the royal clan.96 Needless to say, some are
worthy of praise; others are not. On the negative side, we may mention two men in particu-
lar. An example of an egotistical king maker is Gongzi Yuan. When King Wen (r. –)
died, he left behind two young sons (Zhuang [or Du] Ao and the future King Cheng) who
succeeded each other in short order. Presumably it was Gongzi Yuan (Wen’s brother) who
maneuvered the assassination of Zhuang Ao and the enthronement of Cheng. In any case, he
surely was the power behind the throne and evidently even harbored royal ambitions, as he
took up residence in the palace and was infatuated with a royal consort. His domination of
the court extended over the span of a decade and was brought to an end (in ) only when
he was assassinated by a scion of the Dou lineage (thereby initiating the era of the Ruo Ao
lineages).
Wa, of the Yang collateral lineage, was another prime minister whose record was less than
laudable. From the time he rose to the supreme post under King Ping, and through the early
years of King Zhao, he proved to be corrupt and easily swayed by gossip. It was during his
tenure, also, that the Chu heartland was invaded by Wu, and this debacle can at least in part
be attributed to his ignoring warnings about the impending problem. Although eventually he
began to listen to the advice of more responsible officials (albeit only when the crisis had
reached a critical stage) and finally went on campaign against the enemy, as soon as the tide
turned decisively against Chu, he took the easy way out and fled into exile.
On the other side of the ledger, Dou Ziwen (mentioned above) undoubtedly deserves to
be listed among the more competent prime ministers. After all, he served for nearly three
decades, during all but the final few years of the long period of King Cheng’s inactivity
(–), precisely in the phase when Chu first rose to prominence on the interstate scene.
Despite this, we have very few details on his career.97 One episode in which he figures, how-
ever, is widely known. It runs as follows:
Ruo Ao married a woman of the state of Yun, by whom he sired Dou Bobi.
When Ruo Ao died, Bobi accompanied his mother, who returned to her native
state, where he was raised. Having an affair with a daughter of the Lord of Yun,
he sired Ziwen. The wife of the Lord of Yun had the child abandoned in the
marsh of Meng, where he was suckled by a tiger. The Lord of Yun, on a hunt,
observed this, and was so frightened that he returned home forthwith. His wife
then informed him of the daughter’s indiscretion [thus that the child was his
grandson], whereupon he had the child retrieved . . . and conferred his daugh-
ter on [Bobi] as wife.98
• 59 •
This obviously legendary tale may well be designed to enhance the status of Ziwen, who
not only served as lingyin longer than any other individual, but who (at least in later times) was
lauded for not being power hungry.99 It also may have a more subtle point: the account
accords not only Ziwen, but all of Bobi’s descendants (at least one line of descent within the
Dou group100), with a maternal ancestry at least as prominent as that of the descendants of
Ruo Ao in the main lineage (i.e., subsequent rulers).101 This could help explain the dominant
role played by the Dou lineage from Ziwen onward (outlined above).102
Unlike the case of Dou Ziwen, we encounter frequent allusions in the literature to
another prime minister,Wei Ao (more widely known as Sunshu Ao), who served under King
Zhuang. He is easily the most famous of Chu’s prime ministers and (other than Qu Yuan) is
probably the most celebrated figure from Chu history. It is instructive, however, that this is so
despite the fact that (compared to many a lesser figure) he is almost a passing shadow in the
Zuozhuan. He is mentioned therein at only three points, over a span of but two years (–
), so that we cannot even discern the dates of his tenure in office. One of the allusions (the
only one of any substance), however, has played a major role in establishing his reputation. It
describes circumstances in Chu in his time (albeit in words attributed to an official of Jin).
These circumstances may be summarized as follows:
He first put in order the statutes and records and then prescribed in detail the
responsibilities of units within the military when on campaign. In the area of
personnel,“[W]hen the ruler makes appointments, in the case of [candidates] of
the same xing (clan) [as the Chu royal house], he chooses those closest in kinship;
when they are of different xing, he chooses those whose ancestors have served
in the past.” The speaker goes on to claim that de (virtue?) was taken into
account in making appointments, that rewards were conferred according to
accomplishments, that particular favor was accorded to the aged, and that those
from abroad were provided for. Regulations were extensive: dress was distin-
guished between the aristocracy and the commoners, the highborn were to be
properly respected, lower levels of society were to behave in a manner proper to
their station, etiquette was emphasized, the standards of virtue were fixed, and
punishments were carried out properly. Government functions were carried out
in accordance with both the task and the time.103
Obviously, if all of this were historically reliable, Chu at the time would have been a veri-
table utopia, which is highly improbable. There may be some basis to the description of
Sunshu Ao’s personnel policies,104 but that the rest need not be taken literally is suggested by
the fact that an equally laudatory Shiji version is rather different in its specifics.105 Thus it
seems that over time differing accounts of Sunshu Ao’s career and achievements emerged. He
also is the subject of a series of tales preserved in a considerable number of works (none of
which is echoed in the comparatively sober Zuozhuan). Some of these tales overlap elements
of the Shiji account of the man; some do not. A number of them are clearly variants of the
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 60 •
same tale, but sometimes with significant differences. Others have no counterpart in other
sources. The significant point is that they all exhibit an ideological perspective of some sort
(but not necessarily the same one, even when treating the same incident). One trope in these,
for instance, is Sunshu Ao as the almost Daoistic “reluctant official”: having lived as some sort
of a recluse (at least, far from court), he supposedly refused office three times. Suspicion is
thrown on this, however, when other versions are taken into account, because in these he was
dismissed on two occasions (resulting in three tenures in office).106 In sum, Sunshu Ao clearly
is one of those figures frequently encountered in early Chinese literature (such as Wu Zixu,
discussed below) who in later times simply served as a peg on which a historical lesson or
philosophical stance could conveniently be hung.107 The unfortunate result for the historian
is that it is unreasonable to expect the historical Sunshu Ao to “please stand up.”
Chu’s prime ministers, then, included a full array of arrogant manipulators, cowards, and
capable administrators. Given the nature of the sources, however, we often know rather little
about them and—in the case of Sunshu Ao—encounter considerable difficulty in assessing
their actual achievements. From our examination of the roles of lineages and prime ministers,
it should be clear that they represented serious challenges to royal power. We now examine a
few kings to see how they coped with the situation—and how the sources can mislead us.
Kings
Chu’s kings were a mixed lot, running from would-be autocrats to political ciphers. Dis-
cerning where an individual lay along this continuum, however, is often impeded by mis-
leading impressions given in the sources.108
Of the eleven kings who reigned during the period when circumstances can be judged
adequately (ca. –), only three (Mu, Ling, and Ping) were in full charge of state affairs
throughout their reigns.109 Each usurped the throne and thus was necessarily a strong person-
ality. The remaining eight kings during this span of time, however, either came to the throne
at a tender age or experienced ill health. These circumstances resulted in regencies or domi-
nation by strong-willed kinsmen. And, of the kings whose reigns began with regencies, only
half (Cheng, Zhuang, Gong, and Kang) succeeded in gaining a semblance of personal power.
Even with their achievements, however, in absolute terms the kings dominated the court less
than one-half of the time during those two centuries.
Among the unarguably powerful kings, the most interesting was Ling (r. –), a noto-
riously unsavory character and Chu’s greatest despot. The power behind the throne during
the reign of his nephew, Jia Ao (–), he killed the ruler and took the throne for him-
self. He then set out to cow the Chu nobility into total submission. He confiscated their
wealth in order to fund the construction of an elaborate palace and a pleasure retreat, and exe-
cuted several of them. He also treated Chu’s allied states with utter contempt and may have
harbored grandiose dreams of dominating the entire Chinese world.110 Given his behavior
and ambitions, it is hardly surprising that he was left without a single source of support,
either at home or abroad. And when the limits of tolerance had been reached, the first and
• 61 •
only general rebellion against an occupant of the Chu throne broke out. Both court and
countryside rose up against Ling, his sons were murdered, and when rebel armies approached
the capital, the tyrant committed suicide.
Kings Cheng and Zhuang are examples of kings for whom great authority has been
claimed but whose roles diminish greatly upon close examination. Contributing to the image
of King Cheng (–) has been the following Shiji account of his rise and early career:
When King Wen died, his son Zhuang Ao succeeded him. In his fifth year,
Zhuang Ao decided to kill his brother [the future] King Cheng, who thereupon
fled to the state of Sui and with its aid murdered Zhuang Ao and took the
throne. Immediately upon ascending the throne, King Cheng exhibited virtue
(de), displayed compassion, renewed good relations previously enjoyed with the
territorial lords, and dispatched an envoy to present tribute to the Son of Heaven
[Zhou king]. The Son of Heaven conferred on him [the honor of ] sacrificial
meat, saying:“Protect your southern borders, and should the YiYue rebel, do not
allow them to invade the Central States.” 111
There are reasons to be suspicious about several aspects this passage. One of the most dam-
aging is that the Zuozhuan renders Cheng (as well as Zhuang Ao) too young to have played
the roles assigned to him here, either before or after ascending the throne. Nor does the
Zuozhuan record anything about a commission from the Zhou king to defend the southern
realms.112 It is probable, in fact, that this “strongman” image of King Cheng after his time may
have been based in part on Chu achievements during his reign, as they were considerable—
both in terms of territorial expansion and competition with the other superpower ( Jin). In
fact, Chu reached an early height at that time (see Blakeley, chapter ). However, there is no
particular reason to give credit to the king for these successes. In fact, the most serious defeat
Chu had yet experienced (at the famous Battle of Chengpu in ) can be attributed directly
to poor decisions on Cheng’s part. Nor does Cheng’s performance at home prompt us to
view him as a strong personality. His reign fell within the era in which the court was domi-
nated by the Ruo Ao lineages, and there is no indication that he was active in any guise until
. Even then, he did not become openly involved in court affairs until , when he forced
the prime minister (Cheng Dechen) to commit suicide. He then cast his lot with the Dou
lineage, but they were not docile servants. Nor, it might be noted, was Cheng very astute, even
when it came to his own family. He miscalculated in trying to disenfranchise his designated
heir, who rallied the palace guard, killed his father, and ascended the throne in his stead (as
King Mu).
Even greater personal achievements have been claimed for King Zhuang (r. –).113
In one respect, there is no doubt that the reputation is deserved, based on the following
episode:
Ziyue, a Dou lineage prime minister, gathered the forces of the Ruo Ao line-
ages, intending to assault the king. In response, King Zhuang offered princes as
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 62 •
hostages. These having been declined, an open confrontation took place. During
the battle, the king’s soldiers lost heart and began to retreat; but the king em-
boldened them, ordered the attack drums sounded, and advanced. The result was
a royal victory, and King Zhuang thereupon decimated the Ruo Ao lineages.114
Zhuang’s victory ranks as the single most successful political maneuver ever achieved by a
Chu king. It put an end to the sixty years of Ruo Ao lineage domination and set the stage
for the rise of the main lineage. Beyond this, however, other stimuli to his image, such as the
following story (dated to ), are suspect.
The lord of Chu [King Zhuang] attacked the Rong of Lunhun and then pro-
ceeded to the Luo River, where he inspected his troops on the border of Zhou.
King Ding of Zhou dispatched Wangsun Man to greet the lord of Chu, who
inquired of him concerning the size and weight of the tripods (ding). He
replied,“[Universal rulership] is a matter of virtue (de), not of [possession of] the
[nine115] tripods. Of old, when virtue was present in Xia’s quarter, distant
regions made depictions of their unusual creatures and offered metal [bronze] to
the overseers of the nine districts, who cast those creatures in the designs on
tripods. . . . When the virtue of [the Xia ruler] Jie became obscure, the tripods
passed to Shang, with whom they remained for six hundred years. When King
Zhou of Shang became depraved, the tripods were shifted to Zhou. . . . [Its]
King Cheng [of Zhou] . . . divined that Heaven had ordained that Zhou rule
would persist for thirty generations and seven hundred years. Even though the
authority (de) of Zhou has declined, the decree of Heaven has not changed [i.e.,
Zhou’s tenure is not complete]. Therefore, the weight of the tripods [i.e.,
whether they can be transferred] is not yet a matter for inquiry.” 116
There can be little doubt that this story is a post-facto embroidering of historical fact.
Particularly damaging is the fact that there is no solid independent evidence that there ever
was a set of tripods (of whatever number) that symbolized rulership in ancient China (as, for
instance, with the English crown, scepter, and orb). The idea appears only in relatively late
texts and smacks of being a Warring States period invention (particularly in the numero-
logical implications of the number nine). Thus it is improbable that King Zhuang ever
inquired about the tripods, and there are other reasons to question the historicity of the inci-
dent as a whole.117
That King Zhuang gave rise to apocryphal stories also is clearly indicated by this well-
known passage in the Shiji:
After ascending the throne, the king issued no commands for three years, attend-
ing instead to his own pleasures and threatening death to anyone who should
criticize him on this account. A brave official, however, decided to take his
chances. Upon entering the palace, finding the king seated amid his musicians
• 63 •
with a female companion on either side, he said: “I should like to put forth a
riddle. What kind of bird perches on a mound and for three years neither flies
nor sings?” Replied the king: “One which does not fly because it would crash
into the skies and which does not sing out for fear of scaring people. You may
retire. I get your point.” The king nevertheless persisted in his lascivious ways for
another three months, whereupon another official came forth to complain.
Upon seeing him enter, the king said:“Have you not heard of my threat against
criticism?” The officer replied:“My hope is that my death would enlighten my
Lord.” The king then ceased his lewd pleasures, attended to state affairs, executed
several hundred bad officials, promoted a like number of good ones, and placed
the government in the hands of the two critics—all of which was a great relief
to the people.118
There is strong evidence from other sources that all of this is pure fiction.119 Zhuang was
probably rather young when he ascended the throne and, in any case, was for some time
thereafter no more than a pawn in the hands of the Cheng lineage. In other words, no one
at the time would have expected him to issue any decrees in his early years. And, in fact,
Zhuang did not become openly involved in state affairs until the suppression of the Ruo Ao
lineage in or shortly before.120 Finally, over the centuries Zhuang’s image as a strongman
was virtually insured by the fact that the third-century philosopher Xunzi (who, inci-
dentally, spent time in Chu) listed him as one of the five Hegemons (ba) who dominated dur-
ing Spring and Autumn times. However, in a technical sense this surely was not the case;121
and while it may be that Zhuang dreamed of achieving the hegemony, Chu was by no means
the dominant power of his time (facing, as it did, intense competition from Jin).122 With King
Zhuang, then, we have a figure who (on the one hand) was by no means a total figurehead
(at least late in life), but whose role was eventually blown all out of proportion.
In sum, the record compiled by Chu’s kings was a very mixed one, and only a few of them
can safely be said to have been the dominant figures of their times. Having now treated the
main players—from the upper rungs of society—something should be said of men from less
prominent backgrounds.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 64 •
death of the king, the aristocracy rose up and killed Wu Qi (in ), and his measures were
reversed. This restoration of aristocratic privileges is often cited as the principal reason that
Chu was unable to compete in the long run with Qin (which set out on a thorough reform
not long after, in ). Still, even presuming that at least the central thrust of the Wu Qi epi-
sode is historically reliable,123 the revival of aristocratic prerogatives must have been either
partial or short-lived (in light of the considerable degree of centralization suggested by the
Baoshan materials, noted above).
Another nonroyal clan figure (also an immigrant) was Fei Wuji. Originally from the state
of Cai, he was appointed by King Ping as junior tutor to his heir apparent (Taizi Jian). Fei
Wuji, ambitious from the outset, soon began a slur campaign against a rival for the ear of the
king, who then fled into exile. Although not pleased, King Ping took no action. Fei Wuji soon
targeted another potential rival, the principal tutor (thus his immediate superior) and a
member of a prominent nonroyal clan kindred, Wu She.124 Accusing Wu She of dereliction
of duty in not finding a wife for the heir, Fei Wuji convinced the king to turn this task over
to him. Once a suitable woman had been found, however, he prevailed upon the king to take
her for himself. Fei Wuji then set out to get rid of Wu She. He proposed that Taizi Jian be
posted to the northern frontier, where Wu She would naturally accompany him. The king
agreed, but the location Fei Wuji suggested was such that he could accuse the heir and his
tutor of plotting rebellion. The king, taken in by this subterfuge, issued an order for the
seizure of Wu She and the execution of the heir. (By the time the king realized his mistake,
his son had fled to safety abroad.) Once again, Ping made no move to punish Fei Wuji for his
machinations.
Now it happened that Wu She had two sons who were living abroad. Fei Wuji convinced
the king to offer a pardon for the father if the sons would return to Chu. Only one did so,
leaving the condition for a pardon unfulfilled. Consequently, Wu She and the repatriated son
were executed on the king’s orders. Emboldened by his success and confident of his relation-
ship with the king, Fei Wuji then began to accept bribes. When this came into the open, the
king, despite some displeasure, still made no move against him and died without doing so.
Fei Wuji’s plots continued into the following reign, that of King Zhao. He accused one Xi
Wan of plotting to assassinate his patron, Prime Minister Nang Wa. This action drove Xi Wan
to commit suicide, and despite strong complaints about Fei Wuji’s behavior from courtiers,
Nang Wa executed Xi Wan’s family and associates. The latter included men of the Yang col-
lateral lineage, and its surviving members therefore launched an intense campaign against Fei
Wuji. In the face of this, the prime minister finally gave in and executed Fei Wuji.
We have this degree of detail on no other Chu figure of comparable social background.
Suspicions that it is not entirely reliable as historical fact, however, arise from several angles.
The account of Fei Wuji’s career has qualities suggesting that it was originally an integrated
story, one concocted after the fact, that has been cut up and placed at appropriate points in
the Zuozhuan’s chronology.125 A major reason for caution is that the story does not really end
where we have left it. Fei Wuji’s manipulations, we eventually learn, had long-range effects.
One was a rebellion raised by a son of the disenfranchised Taizi Jian.126 The other is that the
son of Wu She who remained abroad, Wu Zixu, avenged his father’s death by giving military
• 65 •
advice to his adopted home—Chu’s archival at the time, the state of Wu. This led to the most
serious military crisis Chu had experienced to date: the invasion and occupation of the Chu
heartland by Wu in – (see Blakeley, chapter ). We have here, then, a theme common
in the quasi-historical literature of early China—tracing the source of crises back to some
unsavory, inept, or immoral character. It may be, too, that the tale was an element in a broader
story cycle containing another didactic theme: one of its central figures—Wu Zixu—is the
protagonist of the most extensive body of lore concerning any figure of Spring and Autumn
times.127 Since most of the tale concerns his career in Wu, we will not delve into it here, but
it should be noted that its leitmotif is a popular one in the quasi-historical literature: mal-
treatment by a ruler of a righteous and/or capable official.128 A final source of suspicion is
the rather evenhanded treatment of Fei Wuji and his social superiors. While Fei Wuji is clearly
the villain, neither King Ping nor Nang Wa is without fault, and there is almost a sense of sat-
isfaction over Fei Wuji’s ability to manipulate the nominal wielders of power. The story, then,
reflects less the aristocratic conditions of Spring and Autumn times than the growing social
leveling of Warring States times.
Conclusion
We have seen in this chapter that the nature of the sources poses major obstacles to compre-
hending state and society in Chu. The available data permit insights into a good many aspects,
but at the same time leave a number of issues clouded (especially with respect to the roles
played by individuals). Nevertheless, it can safely be said that the characteristics of Chu society
and state fell largely within the general framework of the time (and ultimately derived from
the north) but exhibited certain distinctive characteristics. Most of the latter lay at the level
of details and therefore are not particularly significant. One unique feature, however, stands
out—a degree of political centralization unknown elsewhere in ancient China until the mid-
fourth century.129 This must have been critical to Chu’s ability to create and administer a
virtual empire, one unequaled in extent and sophistication before the rise of Qin. And it
seems likely that Qin’s creation of a truly centralized, bureaucratic empire owed a deep debt
to innovations first made in Chu.
Bar ry B. Blakeley
• 66 •
5
The Ideology of the
Chu Ruling Class
Ritual Rhetoric and Bronze Inscriptions
Constance A. Cook
T he quest of Chu kings for power was a popular subject for ancient storytellers. Begin-
ning as early as the Zuozhuan, we see, for example, the famous tales of two arrogant
but successful seventh-century Chu rulers, Kings Zhuang and Ling, who suggested that the
time had come for Zhou to pass the sacred “Nine Caldrons” on to Chu.1 The Nine Caldrons
represented the Heavenly Mandate (tianming), the right to rule the empire; they also sym-
bolized the Zhou lineage authority to cast sacred bronze vessels for communication with
heaven.2 In each case, the Chu kings were outmaneuvered by artful ministers who guarded
the spiritual rights of the Zhou ruler, subtly hinting at the moral inferiority of the Chu
rulers. The caldrons, it was explained, moved of their own will. They were heavy or light
depending on the accumulation of power (de) by the ruler. Although the story describes this
power as an almost magical control over evil forces, we know from the Zhou inscriptions on
bronze ritual vessels that this special power was tied to the accretion of symbolic Zhou treas-
ures or wealth associated with a lineage member’s merit ( gong). Merit was gained through
active roles in ritual sacrifice to the Zhou royal ancestors or in military expansion of the
sacred Zhou empire. What the ministers were hinting, then, was that the Chu kings did not
have the power because they were not connected to the Zhou legacy. However, analysis of the
Chu bronze inscriptions reveals a loyalty to Zhou ritual that contradicts these early tales.
Zhou ritual was perpetuated in Chu by ritualists who often held official positions as advi-
sors to the king. These advisors, the brains behind Chu success (and failure),3 were considered
a Chu treasure by envious northern states.4 By the end of the Warring States period the Chu
ritualists had become so powerful that sacred bronzes were no longer cast for use by the royal
Chu descendants, but for the ritual officers instead. In this chapter we will see how the ritu-
• 67 •
alists manipulated Zhou ideology to fit the Chu quest for power and simultaneously enhanced
their own power.
Constance A. Cook
• 68 •
Virtue and Conquest
Both the giver and the recipient of a command had to be legitimate—that is, had to have
“power”—in the eyes of the overseeing ancestral spirits; this was achieved through the ritual
reenactment of the Zhou conquest, the primal Zhou act that caused heaven to shift its man-
date from the earlier Shang ruler to the Zhou (and, according to legend, caused the movement
of the Nine Caldrons.) The giver was linked to heaven through his ancestors and the recipient
through the giver.9 Both had to grasp (bing), as one would a sword, the luminous power10
inherited from the first Zhou kings,Wen and Wu (whose names symbolize ritual and military
accomplishment). With the power in hand, the descendent had to display his “awe-inspiring
decorum,” the ritual or military subjugation of border peoples (and eternal expansion of the
Zhou state). This proved to the manifested ancestral spirits that they had faithfully followed
the ancestral model (xing, a metaphor of the mold used to cast bronzes) and did not let the
mandate fall. Only then did they have the power to give or receive a command.
• 69 •
imized themselves in inscriptions cast for the eyes of spirits and mortals during celebration of
the annual sacrificial rites and covenant feasts.
Figure 5.1 Rubbing of Wangzi Wu sheng-ding inscription [after Ma Chengyuan et al, vol. , –]. The
graph de is the first graph in the fourth line from the left. The inscription reads right to left.
Constance A. Cook
• 70 •
The seven intricately decorated high-legged caldrons of Wu placed in Weizi Ping’s tomb all
had the word “Ping” scratched into their surfaces. Whether Weizi Ping received Wu’s bronzes
as an emblem of merit during his lifetime or as a lineage debt paid at his death remains a
mystery.18
Prince Wu became commanding governor in . Two years earlier, in , Wu’s brother,
King Gong, died, and Gong’s son (Wu’s nephew), Kang, ascended the throne.19 The vessels
were probably cast around that time. According to the inscription, Wu made the caldrons to
present meat offerings 20 to “express filial piety to ‘our’ Brilliant Ancestors and Accomplished
Dead-father” (Wu’s father was King Zhuang, who died in ). In exchange for the sacrifice,
he prayed for long life.
To legitimize his right to cast the bronzes and be commanding governor, he described his
ritual and military merit (his wen and wu) to the spirits. In ritual, he behaved “with deep rever-
ence and extensive fairness, expressing awe and care when paying his respects [to the spirits]
in their luminous sacrificial rite.” In return, he expected “to eternally receive good fortune
from them.” In military affairs, he claimed:“I am neither fierce nor flawed, but am beneficent
with my power and am skilled with my awe-inspiring decorum.” Words representing music
followed—sounding something like “glan glan djog djog” (Clang! Clang! Ding! Dong!)—indi-
cating perhaps the acceptance of Wu’s merit speech by the spirits and the commencement of
the feast. Prince Wu proclaimed: “It is me, Commanding Minister Zigeng, wherein lies the
respect of the people.”
The humane influence of the Wei family was extolled by Chu’s enemy to the north, the
state of Jin, in .21 When Chu wiped out the Jin army at Bi in , Prince Wu’s father, King
Zhuang, declined to express his triumph in the barbaric manner suggested by one of his less
humane advisors, namely, by piling up the bodies of the conquered as a display of his martial
merit (wugong) to his descendants. Rather, he chose to model himself upon the legendary
behavior of the Zhou king Wu. He explained that the true meaning of the word “wu” could
not refer to a vulgar display of defeated enemies; instead, the word must be understood as a
sum of the meaning of its graphical parts: zhi, “to stop”; and ge, “dagger-axe.” In other words,
he explained (showing off his knowledge of the Zhou eulogies to their former kings):
To show off his power, he did not display barbarian brutality but built a temple instead. There,
he sacrificed to his ancestral spirits to report his wu and how he (like the Zhou king) had
brought harmony to the land.23
When King Kang came to the throne, his uncle, Prince Wu, still was most likely the real
power behind the throne; thus it is not surprising that he would express himself in terms fit
for a king. He had led military campaigns, but, just as he claimed in the inscription, he was
not bellicose by nature. In fact, in , three years after Wu had been promoted to com-
• 71 •
manding governor, the young King Kang complained that he had been king for five years and
had yet to go out on a military campaign. The people would think him lazy. How could he
live up to the former kings? Prince Wu agreed to the king’s proposed campaigns only with
reluctance, noting that Chu and Jin had been at peace for some time now. Indeed, according
to the Zuozhuan, the inauspicious expeditions—which the young king insisted upon—were
unsuccessful, and many of the troops died from illness.24
The ritual language on Prince Wu’s sacrificial vessels was copied—almost to the word—
in two bell inscriptions commissioned by two royal grandsons, Gao (Wangsun Gao) and Yizhe
(Wangsun Yizhe). Their exact relationship to Prince Wu is unclear, but the similarity of the
inscribed texts points to a “common archival source.”25 With the sound of the bells, they
made their inscribed merits, their power, heard throughout the world. Like Prince Wu, they
governed the people with “diligent plans” and displays of awe-inspiring decorum; they were
“martial (wu) in putting into effect their military merit (ronggong).”
The terminology of these sixth-century Chu inscriptions can be traced, phrase by phrase,
to earlier Western Zhou inscriptions; it is also echoed throughout the ritual rhetoric of con-
temporary inscriptions of other states.26 This clearly suggests that Chu participated in a con-
tinuous scribal tradition, one inherited from the Zhou and disseminated throughout early
China. A study of the fragments of ritual rhetoric used in the inscriptions of Chu and its
neighbors reveals that the most archaic versions of the rhetoric in early Spring and Autumn
period inscriptions come from the states of Qin and Jin in the northwest, confirming a north-
western origin or, at least, preservation of the tradition. The rulers of Qin and Jin, unlike
those of Chu, carried on the rhetoric of modeling themselves upon their own ancestral
rulers, but, like the Chu, they “paid their respects to their [ancestors’] rites in order to receive
much good fortune.” The Qin rulers made their luminous power heard through the world,
and the Jin rulers extolled their ancestors through their diligence and their plans.27 These
rulers were concerned that the spirits protect their states and admire their efforts to expand.
Expansion, in the case of Jin particularly, was at the expense of Chu. The Jin, like the Zhou
kings, wanted access to southern metals, in particular the bronze of Fanyang.28
Constance A. Cook
• 72 •
loan of meng for ming in the inscriptions of states at battle with, or in the process of being
absorbed by, Chu: the Jin, Zhu, Xu, and Cai.29
The ritual feast, used in the Western Zhou as a forum for gift-giving and the adjustment
of social status, had become by the late Spring and Autumn period—the time when Chu was
at the peak of its power—the ultimate scene of political machination. Indeed, contemporary
records show that the feasting of visiting emissaries from other states was a common arena in
which to show off one’s awe-inspiring demeanor, often to the embarrassment of the visitor
(who would then report the excess to his own government and subsequently be assured by a
ritualist that such arrogance was in fact inauspicious for the host).30
We see, for example, that when Chu and Jin were negotiating peace in , the Chu and
Jin sent envoys to each other’s states. Going first to Chu, a Jin envoy heard the sounds of
music coming from an underground room and became frightened that the ritual of present-
ing sacrificial offerings and hosting feasts (xiang yan zhi li) would be used for a simple envoy
and not the head of state.31 Before entering the room, he lectured Zifan, the Chu minister in
charge of the ceremony:“[O]ne presents offerings (xiang) in order to give [participants] a les-
son in modesty. One hosts a feast (yan) in order to show [participants] one’s beneficence. Use
modesty to practice ritual and beneficence to spread government. Government is accom-
plished through ritual.” Only then, he continued, would the people be at rest (not rebellious)
and the officers get their proper orders. Thus proving himself the moral superior (and ration-
alizing himself in a sticky situation), he partook of the Chu ceremony. Later, however, a Jin
minister, upon hearing of the Chu audacity, interpreted it as a bad omen. Indeed, the peace
did not last.
The feast was a place where the host also observed the awe-inspiring demeanor of the
guests and determined from it the inauspicious or auspicious fortunes in store for his state.32
Wine was passed around in rhinoceros horn cups, strategically selected odes were sung back
and forth, games were played, and specially prepared dishes were consumed.33 The true nature
of the represented states’ relations were divined from the ability of the guest to select an
appropriate song, from his response to the food service—whether he enjoyed the roast meat
that was sliced (for envoys) or served whole (for lords), or whether he lost at a game of toss-
ing arrows into a wine vessel. The guest’s demeanor, or political savvy, was a measure of his
knowledge of Zhou etiquette and rites.
On occasion, the feasts that followed covenants were less than joyful. Once when the high
lord of Cai was being entertained in Chu, the Chu king Ling (r. –) soldiers captured
and murdered him.34 One ruler, a victim of a coup d’état in Wei, was pursued by a contend-
ing prince and his men (dressed as women) into his privy, where they caught him and forced
him to feast on roast pig and drink wine, thus sealing a covenant that effectively forced him
out of power.35
Out with the Old, In with the Ancient: The Warring States Period
In , Zizhang (the Chu king Hui), a child of the Chu king Zhao (r. –) and his wife
from Yue, came to the throne. In the fifty-sixth year of his reign, a year before his death in ,
• 73 •
he commissioned a set of bells to be used while sacrificial offerings were presented in the
temple of Archer Lord Yi of Zeng (Zeng Hou Yi), the deceased ruler of an eastern neighbor
and affiliate of Chu. Two of these bells were found near Suixian, Hubei, during the Song
dynasty, and another one was found recently in Zeng Hou Yi’s elaborate tomb (fig. .).36 The
inscriptions on these bells are essentially the same except that those found during the Song
period contain some additional musical terms;37 they may have represented above- and
below-ground copies of the text signifying the use of the dead as a conduit for conveying a
contract between the living and their ancestors. This contract was like the covenant feasts
aboveground, sealed with a feast below ground, the remains of which have been preserved for
us in the tomb.38 Both the inscribed bronzes and the feast functioned to fix Zeng Hou Yi’s
rank (in heaven and on earth) as a high lord in the Chu government.
Zizhang’s scribe employed a combination of archaic and new rhetorical forms. The inscrip-
tion begins with a dating formula going back to the late Shang–early Western Zhou period.
At that time the word si, “sacrificial rite,” also meant “year” of a living king’s reign, an event
no doubt marked by the revolving ritual calendar of sacrifices to patron ancestral spirits.39 By
the time of Zizhang, however, the term si clearly referred to sacrificial rites to all spirits,
ancestral as well as those of nature.40 The use of a Shang-style dating formula either repre-
sents a purposeful archaism or ignorance on the part of the scribe. It also suggests that this
scribe did belong to the Zhou tradition and symbolizes the beginning of an era when, the
Zhou mandate having clearly slipped, kings began to rely on other, perhaps local, traditions
to preserve their legitimacy. These local traditions may have preserved conventions dating
back to the Shang and early Western Zhou periods. We see, for example, that after stating the
year, the scribe noted that the Chu king was “returning from Xiyang.”41 Noting the king’s
movements goes back to the era when the state was maintained through traveling and gift-
giving feasts performed in situ for chiefs initiated into the early Zhou order.42
The remaining text of the inscription is rather simple, describing the manufacture of a
sacrificial object for the temple of Zeng Hou Yi and its placement in Xiyang. The inscrip-
tion ends with a graphically skewed version of a blessing typical of the time and region:
“[E]ternally treasure it and use it to present sacrifices.” This and other similar variants com-
mon to Zeng, Cai, and this “Chu” bell suggest their manufacture in the same foundry oper-
ated by a single school of scribes or ritualists, or at least scribes that shared an oral tradition.43
Two weapon inscriptions, also commissioned by Zizhang, confirm the piecemeal nature
of the language of Warring States period inscriptions: a sword, found in the tomb of the Chu
king You (r. –) in Shouxian, Anhui, and a dagger-axe, found somewhere around
Luoyang, Henan.44 The sword inscription uses typical Warring States rhetoric: “Chu king
Yin 45 Zhang cast a sword for Cong X Shi. Use it on travels; use it on military expeditions.”46
The dagger-axe inscription, on the other hand, is unprecedented. The text is inscribed with
bird-script of inlaid gold, typical of the state of Yue and the Huai River valley.47 Whereas
weapon inscriptions are normally perfunctory statements of manufacture, the Chu inscription
borrows from the rhetoric of legitimation seen earlier in the inscriptions of sixth-century rit-
ual bells and food vessels:“Chu king Yin Zhang, stern, reverent, and respectful, made a chariot
lance dagger-axe, a dagger to be used in order to glorify and extol Wen and Wu.” The concept
Constance A. Cook
• 74 •
of extolling one’s ancestors (zhaoyang) through the military expansion of the empire preserved
the spirit of the Zhou conquest. However, actually to inscribe this sacred message onto a
weapon instead of onto a sacrificial vessel was a bold, even crude, step—one that combines a
lapse of understanding of the old rites with a curious memory of the rhetoric. Most interest-
ing is the ambiguous, perhaps metaphorical, reference to Wen and Wu. Was the scribe alluding
to the early Chu kings Wu (r. –) and Wen (r. –), to the founders of the Zhou
empire,Wen and Wu, or simply to the concepts of wen and wu, the ritual and martial behavior
imitated by and extolled in Zizhang himself ? Quite possibly it was all three.
One aspect of the old rites was certainly not lost in Warring States period Chu: the use of
ritual vessels in feasts. Earlier this century, looters discovered the royal Chu mausoleum at the
last capital of Chu, Shouchun in Shouxian, Anhui. One tomb most likely belonged to the
Chu king You (d. ), but as with the Wei mausoleum in Xichuan, it included earlier vessels.
King You’s tomb included vessels commissioned by his father, King Kaolie (r. –).48 The
high-footed caldrons, food service vessels, and basins of both kings were cast “in order to
present the annual autumnal sacrifice” (yi gong suichang). The calligraphy and rhetoric of the
inscriptions are similar to that found on Warring States bamboo texts and reaffirm earlier evi-
dence of the use of scribes trained in a non-Zhou tradition.
Many of the vessels were specifically made for the ritualists in charge of the administration
and service of grains, meats, and wines at the grand feast. The master ritualists included a
number of officials, aligned to the right or left of the High Temple Elder, who was in charge
of setting up the sacrificial feast. Inscribed on certain sacrificial implements were the names
of different subordinate groups of officials in charge of various aspects of the food and wine
service.49 Other inscribed vessels plundered from this tomb or neighboring sites50 were made
for the dining halls, chambers, and repositories of the queen (hou) or the royal heirs (taizi).
Ritualists were in charge of their food service as well.
When King Kaolie came to the throne in , he set his tutor (and his father’s faithful
minister) up as lord of Chunshen in the former territory of the Wu state. Sometime between
this date and , when Chu fell to the invading Qin, this local lord (or a later replacement)
cast a set of oversized sacrificial wine vessels (yi and jian) and food vessels (dou).51 Scratched
into the surfaces of the basin and food serving vessels is the following inscription: “Prince
Shen, Lord of Eling (Chunshen), used these [metals] to create a metal basin (or food vessel).
Use it to prepare the annual autumnal sacrifice in order to perform the sacrificial rite to the
Brilliant Ancestors and to bring together the fathers and older brothers. Forever using it, may
the officials use it without limit.”52
On the eve of the extinction of the Chu state, we see that a Chu prince no longer cast
his vessels for the eternal use of his descendants as in days of old. Instead, as with the Shouxian
vessels above, these vessels were made for the use of ritualists who controlled the great feast and
brought together members of the patriarchy to celebrate and perform the annual sacrificial
rite (si) to their ancestral gods. After the Chu moved east, fleeing from western invaders just
like the Zhou before them, they lost their connection to heaven. The king and his descen-
dants no longer mediated communications between the spirits and the people. Instead, as with
the later Han emperors, their spiritual matters were managed by a bureaucracy of officials.
• 75 •
Royal Rhetoric versus Local Practices:
Questions of Tradition, Text, and Culture
The Chu debt to the Zhou ritual tradition is evident from the inscriptions cast by its kings
and princes. Throughout the history of the Chu state, its rulers emulated the Zhou virtues of
wen and wu and hosted grand religious feasts to perform the si sacrificial ritual to the ances-
tral spirits. Long after the inscribed rhetoric of other states was limited to brief statements on
weapons, pieces of the Zhou legacy were still preserved by the Chu royal family.53
The decline of the Zhou rhetorical legacy followed the disintegration of the Zhou Heav-
enly Mandate. By the beginning of the Warring States period society could no longer func-
tion along the old rules. A rapidly rising urban elite elevated local customs to replace or isolate
the stilted Zhou rituals no longer so well understood (or obeyed) in the royal courts. Literacy,
once limited to a small caste of scribes and ritualists, had spread to the point where local
officials had libraries of bamboo and silk texts. A number of these texts recently have been
excavated from southern tombs that belong to Chu, Qin, or Han period elites. The Chu
books, particularly, show a concern with divination and a literary style that resonates back to
the Shang period, suggesting that no matter how much the royalty were instructed in the use
of a Zhou-style liturgy, the local literati maintained even older traditions.54
As the Zhou mystique faded and local liturgical traditions thrived, the power of the
inscribed text was transferred from the hands of the royalty to those of the ritualists. Even-
tually, inscriptions became simple lists of ritual measurements and designations of function,
and the sacred bronze vessels, once the ultimate sign of prestige, were replaced by shiny
lacquerware.
Constance A. Cook
• 76 •
6
Chu Law in Action
Legal Documents from Tomb 2 at Baoshan
Susan We ld
T he books transmitted to modern readers from early China, whether histories, philo-
sophical works, or anthologies, do not tell us much about the practical operation of
legal institutions. In this respect, Chu differs little from other states in having a decidedly low
“legal profile” in the best-known classical works. In the last few decades archaeologists have
opened graves containing thousands of strips of legal and ritual texts that begin to fill the gaps
in our understanding of law in early China. Students of Chu are fortunate in that several of
the great “law graves” have been found in the heartland of cultural Chu, and that one such
grave dates to the Warring States period.
In April a team of salvage archaeologists working on the construction of the new
Jingmen-Shashi railroad line investigated a small group of Chu tombs on a hill called Baoshan
in the village of Wangchangcun, Hubei Province.1 Wangchangcun is located in hilly country,
on the northern edge of the Jiang-Han plain.2 Since the Chu cemeteries in this area
have been recognized as important cultural sites, and the thirteen burial areas found so far
within ten kilometers of Baoshan include at least forty-one large tombs marked with sizable
tumuli. Baoshan itself is only sixteen kilometers north of the ancient Chu city site of Jinan-
cheng, and its remains form part of an extensive system of Eastern Zhou cemeteries centered
on this city, famous in historical sources as the Chu capital of Ying.3
Tomb , the largest in the group of five Baoshan graves, yielded well-preserved
inscribed bamboo strips, containing altogether , graphs. These strips tell us that the
master of the tomb was a high official in the Chu government, the zuoyin Shao Tuo. A literal
translation of zuoyin would be “Director of [or on] the Left,”4 but the documents in Shao
• 77 •
Tuo’s grave suggest that in his case, at least, zuoyin should be understood more specifically as
the Chu equivalent of the Zhou position of sikou, sometimes translated as “minister of jus-
tice.” 5 It is because Shao Tuo held this key position in the Chu judicial system that the doc-
uments carefully laid in his tomb—to guide him in his bureaucratic activities in the beyond,
symbolize his prestige among the spirits, or perhaps just fend off boredom in the afterlife—
offer legal historians an irreplaceable glimpse of the actual operation of Chu law and justice
in the Warring States period.
The Duke of She said to Confucius: In our village, we have a true example of
an upright person. When the father stole a sheep, the son gave evidence against
him. Confucius answered: Among us, the upright are quite different. Fathers
cover up for sons and sons cover up for fathers. Such is truly upright behavior.6
Chu’s image in this passage is legalistic to a fault; however, the conversation has more the feel-
ing of a moral parable than a depiction of reality. Another example is the admiring speech of
the Jin commander Shi Hui before Jin’s disastrous defeat by Chu at the battle of Bi in .
Shi Hui was warning his belligerent companions that an attack on so virtuous and well-
organized an opponent as Chu would be sure to fail:
I have heard that, in using military force, one must examine the pretext before
moving. A [state] that unceasingly practices virtue in its punishments, its gov-
ernment, its business affairs, its laws (dian), and its rituals is not to be attacked. . . .
Last year Chu invaded Chen, and this year Zheng, but its people are not weary,
and there is no resentment or criticism of the ruler: its government is so well
ordered. When Chu attacked Chen, the affairs of its merchants, farmers, crafts-
men and traders were not harmed. . . .
When Wei Ao became Chief Minister, he selected the best dian of the state
of Chu. . . . [T]he hundred officers move according to signals, and the army is
ready for anything. [This shows] his ability to implement the ordinances (dian).
In the ruler’s appointments, appointees of his own surname (neixing) are chosen
from among his relatives, while appointees of other surnames (waixing) are cho-
sen from among his old companions. His choices do not ignore virtue, hard
work does not go unrewarded, and kindness is shown to the aged.
Travelers are treated with hospitality and exempted from service obligations.
S u s a n We l d
• 78 •
High and low ( junzi xiaoren) are distinguished by dress, the noble adhere to a
constant standard of honor, while the mean follow graded rules of deportment,
so that propriety is not violated.
Virtue established, punishments implemented, government perfected, state
action timely, laws obeyed, rites followed: how can we make this state our enemy? 7
This portrait has an air of impossible perfection: Shi Hui seems to be using an imaginary Chu
to criticize current affairs in Jin. However, the speech neatly raises worthwhile questions
about the Chu state: questions about social stratification; systems of social control for elites
and commoners; the kinship and appointment systems; the treatment of traders, craftsmen,
and travelers; the use of sumptuary laws; and the meaning of dian. These are all questions that
we would like to have answered, not only for , but also for the last two decades of the
fourth century , the era of the texts from Tomb at Baoshan.
The term dian, used in the above speech, appears frequently in passages related to law in
early Chinese transmitted documents.8 Creel explains the origin of this graph as a pictograph
of “a book standing on a table . . . a book treated with special regard,” and suggests that it can
mean canon, statute, or archives.9 One tale in the Zanguoce refers to a high Chu officer called
dianling.10
Another tells the story of an early Chu hero who rescued the ji ci zhi dian, or “Chicken
Order dian,” from Wu’s sack of the city of Ying in :
After the battles at Lake Ju when Wu had entered our capital, our ruler fled, the
ministers followed, and our people were scattered everywhere. Menggu . . . left
the fight to hurry to Ying.
“If the heir lives,” said he,“the altars of Chu may yet survive.”
He entered the great palace, bore off the ji ci zhi dian, and made his way by
river to escape in the fens of Yunmeng. When King Chao reentered Ying, his
five officials had lost the fa and the populace was in confusion. Menggu pre-
sented the dian and the officials regained their fa; the populace was thereby
restored to order.11
While the story tells us nothing in detail about the contents of the precious text saved by
Menggu, it implies that this dian, stored in the palace in the capital city where Shao Tuo
served as minister of justice, held the key to effective government in Chu. Indeed, the story
hints that dian were in some way prior to the fa, that other vital but ambiguous Eastern Zhou
term from the discourse of law and social control.12
Famous fa (often translated as “laws” or “statutes”) mentioned in pre-Qin books in con-
nection with Chu include the pu qu zhi fa, or “Law on Hiding Fugitives,” and the mao men
zhi fa, or “Law of the Reed Gate.” 13
The pu qu zhi fa appears in a Zuozhuan story about a Chu official’s success in forcing one
of Chu’s rulers to conform to ritual and legal rules, first as heir and chief minister and later
• 79 •
as king. When the heir to the throne dared to use a “king-size” banner while hunting, his
officer Wu Yu cut it down to the ritually correct size, saying, “Two lords in one state: who
could stand it?”14 Later, after succeding to the throne, the ruler built the Zhang Hua Palace
and invited fugitives to fill it.15 When a hunren, or gatekeeper (mutilated criminals often
served in these positions16) belonging to Wu Yu fled into the Zhang Hua Palace, Wu Yu fol-
lowed to get him back. However, a palace official refused to hand the fugitive over, saying,
“The criminal liability of one who seizes a man in the king’s palace is heavy indeed!” He then
had Wu Yu himself arrested and brought before the king.
Wu Yu took this opportunity to give the king a lecture on the importance of preserving
the social hierarchy, stretching from the king and feudal lords, at the top of the social ladder,
to the servants and menials at the bottom. He cited a law of King Wu ordering a great round-
ing up of fugitives at the beginning of the Zhou dynasty and noted that Chu’s own King Wen
had enacted the pu qu zhi fa.17 Wu Yu explicitly argued that coercion was necessary to keep
the lowliest subjects in their places: “If these flee, and [people are allowed to] shield them,
there will be no one to fill the menial’s place.” In the end, the king grudgingly ordered Wu
Yu:“Take your servant and go.18
The mao men zhi fa is mentioned in both the Shuo Yuan and the Han Feizi as a Chu ritual
rule that is enforced even against the ruler’s heir. The Han Feizi is most specific, using the
anecdote of the mao men zhi fa to illustrate the following canon:
Now, the lords of men may be anxious to know how to rule over the state, but
unable to make rules beforehand in the way the teachers of singing have melo-
dies composed beforehand. . . . Thus, who can cut open the boils of the people
must be able to endure the same pain himself.19
The text drives this canon home with the story of King Zhuang of Chu rewarding a palace
guard who had attacked the crown prince’s chariot for entering an area forbidden under the
Law of the Reed Gate. When the prince asked to have the guard punished, the king said:
The law is that whereby the ancestral temple is revered and the altar of the grain
and soil honored. Therefore, one who can establish the law, follow orders, and
respect the altars is a [loyal] servant of the altars. How could he be punished? 20
A final anecdote of Chu concerning written law occurs in the Shiji account of the life of
the enigmatic figure Qu Yuan. That story begins with Qu Yuan at the court of King Huai of
Chu, the very king whom Shao Tuo, the master of Tomb at Baoshan, served as zuoyin. Qu
Yuan himself is described as the king’s zuotu, explained in the commentary as a personal assis-
tant and translated by Watson as “aide.” 21 The Shiji goes on to say that Qu Yuan was good at
formulating edicts 22 and was (possibly for this reason) assigned to draft xianling,23 or written
laws, for Chu. Unfortunately, this assignment aroused the jealousy of his rivals at court, who
seized the chance to criticize him:
S u s a n We l d
• 80 •
Whenever he produces a law (ling), Ping [Qu Yuan] puffs up his accomplish-
ment, saying,“None but I could have done this!”
Believing this slander, and feeling perhaps that as king, he, rather than Qu Yuan, should get the
credit for law-making, King Huai turned against Qu Yuan and ultimately removed him from
his post at court.
The interplay between law and religion is a particularly tantalizing part of the Qu Yuan
story. The above passage from the Shiji paints a picture of Qu Yuan’s early career as an appar-
ently quite secular legal aide to the king. However, the oeuvre for which Qu Yuan has been
famous since Han times, the Chuci, is cast in the languages of religion: myth, sacred journeys,
the fate of the soul, mystical questions, and what has been said by many scholars to be Chu’s
trademark, shamanism. Whether or not shamanism was peculiarly characteristic of Chu, its
importance, for political and legal purposes, is the possibility of direct access for individuals
to the forces and powers of the spirit world. It is conceivable that for someone merely to
believe in the possibility of direct access to the spirits for anyone other than the ruler and his
diviners could imply a vital challenge to the balance of power between ruler and subject.
While there is no guarantee that these textual fragments are more historical than legen-
dary, they give us a hint of what some northerners, at least, thought about Chu law. On one
hand, Chu was said to have been a complex, stratified society that valued its dian, legal docu-
ments that supported social hierarchy and order; on the other hand, Chu was said to have been
willing to enforce its fa, its ritual rules and vagrancy laws, even against the king and his fam-
ily. In addition, two hundred years after the fact, Sima Qian described the very ruler whom
Shao Tuo served as having a jealous interest in the project of legislation. This chapter will
glance at Shao Tuo’s own documents to see whether Chu did indeed “make rules beforehand
in the way the teachers of singing have melodies composed beforehand,” whether its judges
and officials actually followed the score in playing the instruments of state. Finally, in defin-
ing Chu through the examination of the grave documents of Shao Tuo, the chapter will focus
on how underlying religious beliefs, whether or not shamanistic, might have affected Chu
legal culture.
Tomb at Baoshan
The burial pit of Tomb is almost square—. by . meters in size—and was constructed
with fourteen step-ledges down all four sloping sides. Robbers had dug a tunnel into the pit
from the north side, but luckily got no farther than the first guo, or outer coffin, before giving
up. The authors of Beijing b speculate that methane gas produced by the decomposition
of the contents of the guo may have driven the robbers off, leaving the tomb otherwise
untouched for modern archaeologists.24
The wooden structure of the first guo was built resting on the bottom of the tomb over a
small “waist pit,” in which was buried a goat, together with wool and silk textiles. Like a
wooden house,25 the first guo contained not only a central chamber, in which reposed the
• 81 •
Figure 6.1 Tomb , Baoshan [after Beijing b, vol. , pl. .]
grave master’s body within an inner guo and three nested guan coffins, but also four sur-
rounding chambers. The rich furnishings of these chambers hint at Shao Tuo’s privileged life
aboveground and reveal the hope that he might continue to enjoy a comfortable existence
underground after death. Ritual and eating vessels were found in the east chamber, at the
corpse’s head; weapons and horse and chariot gear in the south, along his left side; an intri-
cately built folding bed, bamboo containers and other items needed for life on the road, as
well as a bundle of blank bamboo strips, in the west chamber, at his feet; and pillows, bamboo
mats, boxes, and other comforts of daily life, together with two groups of inscribed bamboo
strips, a scraping knife for erasing scribal mistakes, and a hair writing brush, in the north
chamber, at the corpse’s right hand.26
Figure 6.2 Drawing of Tomb , Baoshan [by Patrick Sheridan after Beijing b, vol. , fig. ]
S u s a n We l d
• 82 •
Archaeologists found the well-preserved skeleton of the tomb master inside the brilliantly
decorated inner guan.27 It was arranged on its back, legs extended, face turned to the right—
turned, perhaps it would not be fanciful to say, toward the precious bundles of legal docu-
ments and divination texts in the north burial chamber.
Analysis of the skeleton led scholars Han Kangxin and Li Tianyuan to conclude not only
that the tomb master was a thirty-five to forty-year-old male, but also that his skull and body
type were closer to northern than southern regional physiognomy.28 Whether this conclusion
is valid, or would also be found to be valid for other high-ranking members of the Chu elite,
as the authors seem to suggest, is a question that must await further study of a wider variety
of Chu skeletal remains. However, scientific testing of Han and Li’s hypothesis about the
racial and ethnic composition and origin of the Chu elite may eventually shed light on any
physiological “Chu difference.”29
“The year following that in which the Grand Marshal Zhaoyang defeated the Jin
army at Xiangling”: .
“The year following that in which Chen Yu, the ambassador from Qi, offered rit-
ual congratulations to the King”: .
“The year following that in which [the Chu noble] Luyang Gong33 repaired the
wall of the capital of Zheng, after the Chu army’s [attack]”: .
“The year following that in which Jian Hu, ambassador of x, paid an incidental
visit to Chu” 34: .
“The year following that in which Sheng Gong Bian, ambassador of Song, paid a
formal visit to Chu”: .
“The year following that in which Xu Ying, ambassador of Eastern Zhou, pre-
sented ceremonial meats35 at [the Chu capital of] Zai Ying”36: .
“The year following that in which the Grand Marshal Zhuo Hua37 came to the
rescue of Fu”: .
This last year appears on strip , which goes on to say:“In the sixth month, on the day ding-
hai, the zuoyin was buried.”38 From this record we know that Shao Tuo’s increasingly anxious
• 83 •
divination inquiries about his worsening health were cut short by his death in the first half of
.
The year names in the above list smack of Chu’s efforts to establish itself as the ritual head
of the contemporary world order: military victories, submissive gestures by other states, and
Chu’s lordly acts of generosity toward them. As Peters observes, tensions at this time were
hottest between Chu and the state of Qin, to the northwest. This conflict would come to a
head with the Qin sack of the Chu capital of Ying in , leading to Chu’s retreat to the
east, only thirty-eight years after Shao Tuo’s death.39
S u s a n We l d
• 84 •
(strips –), horizontal lines to set off the beginning of paragraphs or sentences (strips
–), and double horizontal strokes to indicate repetition or doubling of a graph or phrase
(strip ).43 These features reveal the existence of a flourishing profession of legal scribes and
copyists who supplied the record-keeping wants of the extensive Chu system of civil and
judicial administration.
In ,46 the first month, the prefect A of W received a mandate from Wang
Taizi (the royal heir), and under it verified the [registrations of the] people of W.
Certain of their youths were found to be unregistered.47 The dian registers in
the archives in W should include two youths of junzi rank, B and C, who reside
in X district in Y town; let them be registered. In , the second month,
day dingsi, D, prefect of Z, believing that the prefect A of W was planning to
verify the population of W, destroyed the dian registers. [Four named individuals
fled]. Let them be arrested.
This case reveals both the state’s determination to maintain correct registers and some local
administrators’ desire to escape state scrutiny.
• 85 •
In , the eighth month, on day yiyou, the king held court in the traveling
palace in Lan Ying.48 The prefect of X, the damoao A, sent out the order for all
bangren [probably a city-dwelling low-level elite group] to submit their incorrect
registers, husband the king’s ink, and use it (?) to [rectify and] submit the incor-
rect registers of their underlings.49 B’s son C, one man, [was found to] live in
Ying ward,50 where Marshal Tu registered him;51 C’s son D, one man, and D’s
son E, one man, had not been registered on the dian.52
As a result of the investigations recorded in this group of strips, two youths of junzi, or noble,
rank, and three generations of one bangren 53 family were added to the registers. The offenses
of “keeping incorrect registers” and “failing to register youths” were paralleled in Qin law by
nihu, “hiding households,” and aotong fufu, “failing to add youths to the registers.”54 For such
offenses, village elders could be sentenced to “redeemable shaving of the beard” under Qin
law.55 The Baoshan documents do not mention a particular penalty, but order that a prefect
guilty of the offense be “immediately seized.”56
Elsewhere in the Baoshan strips, the population registers are called deng as well as zhu. In
one case the zuoyin ordered a local lord to check on the registration of the “builder” (zaoshi)
A; after five witnesses inspected the documents, the local lord found A’s registration correct
and sent in the lineage register, shideng, (perhaps as proof ).57 In another case a ward chief was
ordered to make sure to submit the names and residences of those who died in his ward;58 the
state had an interest in keeping the registers right up to date.
The use of the word dian in these cases makes one wonder whether the precious ji ci zhi
dian restored to Ying by Menggu were no more than detailed population registers, reflecting
rank, residence, and tax obligations—a practical method of social control still used in modern
China. Peng Hao observes that the Baoshan strips imply all subjects of the state had to be reg-
istered from childhood, including those of junzi rank as well as bangren, or city-dwellers, and
the apparently servile category of guanren.59 While the terms do not precisely match, these
groups probably reflect a society as complex, stratified, and, in theory at least, carefully con-
trolled as that described by Shi Hui above. The system of total registration also fits well with
the concern for recapture of fugitives expressed in Wu Yu’s criticism of the Zhang Hua
Palace.
In group we find another registration case, in which the dian seems to have functioned
as legal evidence of the ownership or affiliation of certain laborers:
I, Ruo, the legal officer (sibai) 60 [in charge of ] the charioteers of the Five Armies,
dare to report to the “shining sun” [probably an honorary term for the Chu king
himself 61]: “The lord of Shaoxing, Pan Ke Jin, today seized my subordinates
Deng A, Deng B, Deng C, and Deng D, with no just cause (er wu gu 62). I re-
ported this to the lord king; the lord king referred it to the noble zuoyin; the
noble zuoyin referred it to Dan, the newly appointed director of inquisitions.63
[He] ordered me to submit them [as evidence], but when both parties [were to]
bring forward their dian, I had them while Shaoxing did not.64 [Now] the direc-
S u s a n We l d
• 86 •
tor of inquisitions has not ruled in my favor, and the summer [field] work65 of
my laborers will soon be irreparably lost. I cannot present [my case] to the direc-
tor, and do not dare not to report this to the king.66
The matter continues on the backs of strips , , and :
The legal officer in charge of the charioteers of the Five Armies reports, saying:
Jin, the lord of Shaoxing, seized his subordinates; the director of inquisitions did
not decide in his favor; he is displeased. In the tenth month, on day jiashen, the
king delegated [the matter] to the zuoyin.
This case shows a nice progression of the complaint up and down judicial channels, as well as
a sketch of a hearing process, in which both sides were ordered to produce their dian as evi-
dence of their right to the labor of certain workers. The procedure recalls that specified in
the Zhouli: “By [requiring] the presence [of the two parties], [the minister of justice] deters
accusations among the people; with the two [versions of] written evidence, he deters suits
among the people.”67 One suspects that the complainant, the legal officer Ruo, was a person
of some status in Chu who could afford to persist in taking his case repeatedly “all the way
to the top.”
An interesting feature of this case is the fact that the seized laborers all have the same fam-
ily name of Deng.68 On one hand, this circumstance might suggest that the status of guanren
was hereditary in Chu. On the other hand, many of the cases reported in these strips concern
similar groups of complainants or defendants with the same family names.69 Future research
may suggest a social explanation for this pattern, which resembles group robbery cases in the
law clerk’s manual from Shuihudi that involve several members of one family.70 While the
Shuihudi texts date to the Qin period, one must not lose sight of the fact that they were
found only a few hundred miles east of Baoshan and belonged to a local official charged with
governing Nanjun, the Qin prefecture carved out of the former Chu heartland.
The meaning of this formula has been much debated. Peng Hao believes that these strips
record the initial stages of the handling of accusations in Chu.71 In his view the structure tells
• 87 •
us that routine handling of accusations was a two-step process: first, having filed his case on
date , the complainant was assigned date for a hearing to determine whether he had indeed
sustained harm and whether his complaint could go to trial. Only if these two issues were
resolved in the plaintiff’s favor would the case go on to a trial.72 Again, this procedure recalls
the Zhouli, at least as interpreted by Maspero. While a tradition stretching back to the Han
commentator Zheng Xuan read minsong and minyu as two different kinds of cases, namely,
property disputes and criminal accusations, Maspero argues:
[I]l en ressort clairement que les deux phrases du Zhouli sur “l’empechement,”
jin, des accusations, song, et “l’empechement” des proces, yu, que doit tenter le
juge, en depit de leur symetrie qui a induit en erreur les commentateurs anciens,
ne se rapportent pas a deux especes de proces differents, les proces civils et les
proces criminals, mais bien a deux phases successives d’un meme proces (civil ou
criminel suivant les cas), se deroulant depuis l’accusation jusqu’a la sentence.73
Whether or not Maspero’s theory is correct for the royal Zhou, Peng Hao’s interpretation of
the Baoshan documents posits a two-step hearing procedure, as well as no obvious differen-
tiation between the handling of property disputes and crimes.
Strip is an example of a case that, under Peng Hao’s interpretation, did not go to trial:
Eighth month, day jiaxu, is the date on which Zhou Ren, a retainer of the moao
of Liao, received an assigned date. On day guiwei [twenty days afterward], no
trial. Investigation and interrogation [show that] harm was sustained. Prefect A
recorded this case.74
Peng Hao’s analysis of the meaning of the shouqi strips has been challenged by several Chi-
nese scholars. The most persuasive alternative interpretation has come from Chen Wei, who
understands the formula to be a demand sent down on date A from Shao Tuo’s office in the
central government to local officials to take specific judicial action before date B, or suffer the
consequences. If we accept Chen Wei’s reading, strip would read:
Eighth month, day jiaxu, Zhou Ren, a retainer of the moao of Liao, received the
assignment. If he does not go to court on the day guiwei [twenty days after being
assigned this date], harm will be suffered [or, there will be liability].75
The effect of Chen Wei’s interpretation is to transform this group of strips from records of
the zuoyin’s dealings with the parties in various cases into internal bureaucratic communica-
tion and control, in which the plaintiffs have little part.
As Peng Hao points out, the sixty-one strips labeled shouqi include several instances where
the same case is presented a second, or even a third or fourth, time.76 Peng Hao suggests that
a matter could be presented again after being rejected for trial, but no more than three times.77
The phrase san shou bu yi chu does appear in strip , possibly meaning the offense of pre-
S u s a n We l d
• 88 •
senting the same accusation again after having been rejected three times. However, the inclu-
sion of one case four times in this group (strips , , and ), with no indication that the
last instance was disapproved of, suggests that the rule cannot have been so simple. If we try
to understand the repeated cases under Chen Wei’s hypothesis, we end with an impression of
an engaged but rather impotent Chu central government that had sometimes to order local
officials up to four times to achieve compliance.
To give a sense of the time periods involved, this case was presented and heard (under
Peng Hao’s view) or ordered to be heard (under Chen Wei’s view) on the following dates in
:
Regardless of which interpretation is correct, this chart demonstrates the intense focus on
time and time periods in the Chu judicial process.
Peng Hao comes close to Chen Wei’s interpretation when he suggests that the emphasis
on dates in the shouqi strips implies that contemporary legal procedure required officials to
dispose of cases within a fixed time period.78 He refers to a Zhouli passage that governs adju-
dication by magistrates at several levels:
The Han commentator Zheng Sinong compares these rules to those governing appeal in his
day, in which a defendant could seek another investigation within three months of final adju-
dication.80 The Qin documents from Shuihudi refer to a similar appeal procedure but hold
that a qiju request could be entered only after final judgment.81 Peng Hao cites Sun Yirang,
however, for the proposition that the above passage regulates the officials, not the plaintiffs:
“When the people come forward with matters for accusation, the magistrate must adjudicate
them within a fixed time period.” 82 While such a rule would make sense, there is quite a dis-
parity among the periods between dates A and B in the shouqi texts: from just two days to as
many as forty-four. However, others of the Baoshan documents show great dissatisfaction
with the speed of adjudication. In strip , verso, Shao Tuo himself sends a complex case
• 89 •
back down to the local official with the remark:“The case has gone on for a long time with-
out any judgment. [Now] the king has ordered us to bring it to judgment.”
A sampling of the official actions referred to in the last half of the shouqi formula reveals
the breadth of duties required of persons named in the strips relating to legal matters:
Strip hints at what we see in the shuyu strips below: Chu legal authorities used some
system of collective, kin-based responsibility to tighten their control over society.
Regardless of how one interprets these samples, this list shows the state’s interest in having
such duties performed predictably, on a predetermined schedule.
A parallel interest in time, and ways of bringing it within human control, appears in divi-
nation texts from Shao Tuo’s tomb and elsewhere in Chu, which carefully limit their prayers
and questions to fixed time periods, from a month to one or more years, beginning on a
specified date.83 After a series of prayers and sacrifices designed to appease spirits thought by
the diviners to be causing trouble, the divination texts may note:“The [named spirits] are now
all pacified. Within the stated period, there will be happiness.” 84
Unlike the shouqi strips, this formula tells us something substantial about the nature of the
crimes of which these defendants were being accused. A list of some of the actions com-
plained of follows:
S u s a n We l d
• 90 •
Strip : A accuses B, C, D, F, and G [all sharing one family name] of failing to
divide [their] lands (yi bu fen tian zhi gu) 87
Strip : A accuses B and C [who share the same family name], men of Sheng
Furen,88 of killing his older brother and servant
Strip : A accuses twenty-four named individuals [including two Song, four
Huang, and six Deng] of receiving (shou) A’s man [or men] and [enabling
him or them to] escape89
The back of this strip has the following note:“As soon as the document is issued, bring them
to court.” The number of people mentioned in this summary indicates that public security
may have required rapid action.
• 91 •
Strip : A accuses B of seizing his wife
Strip : A accuses B of debt (zhai) 92
Strip : A accuses his guanren (subordinates93) B, C, and D [who all share the
same family name] of resisting or usurping official authority ( fanguan) and
fighting among themselves at Xindajiu [or the “New Grand Stable,” a
place we see the king establishing in strips and ]
Strip : A accuses B of squaring (ju, some kind of illegal survey? 94) fields
Strip : A accuses Grand Intendant (dazai) B, Right Minister of Justice
(yousikou95) C, D, and Prefect (zheng) E of judging illegally (bufa) in his
older brother F’s case
Strip is the only place among these strips where we see the term fa used to mean some-
thing close to “law.” While skimpy evidence, however, this case summary does seem to
concern an individual’s accusation against government authorities for failing to follow unspec-
ified models or rules in making legal judgments: possibly an example of Chu officials failing
to follow the “score,” in Han Feizi’s words.
From this list of the contents of several complaints, we can see that they included both
property disputes and debt actions (which Anglo-American law would generally class as civil);
murder, kidnapping, and rape (all criminal offenses); and malfeasance in office, illegal adjudi-
cation, and unauthorized taxation (administrative law matters). Most use the term song in the
reporting formula, so it is clear that song was not limited to property crimes in the state of
Chu.
The zuozhi [perhaps the assistant in charge of horses] Fan A had a salary fief in
X place. When A died, his son Fan B succeeded him; when B died he had no
son, so his younger brother Fan C succeeded him; when C died, he again had no
son, so the zuoyin Shi(?) ordered that his paternal cousin Fan D be his successor.
S u s a n We l d
• 92 •
While in D’s hands, the salary fief became encumbered with debt, and Gu got
hold of it.97
Gu apparently planned to divide the land thus acquired but was challenged by a successor in
interest to the king, who asserted that Fan A did not have a (legal) successor to the fief. An
official designated to settle the dispute ultimately declared that Fan A did indeed have a proper
successor. In these two strips we may see a nascent development of the right to own and
transfer real property. As in Europe, these kinds of rights were ultimately demanded by those
with money to lend and a thirst for roots in the land. The concept of hou, or an heir who
could ensure succession to real property, remained important in Chu, as we can see by the
inclusion of the “heirless” ( ji wuhou) in the group of unlucky spirits whose inauspicious influ-
ence was to be deflected in Shao Tuo’s last divination texts.
• 93 •
the case had both sides take an oath, affiants in all. When the defendants’ side took the
oath, they all stated:“We testify of what we each have seen and heard: the plaintiff Qing mur-
dered B, and Qing and his brothers all know that the defendants did not kill their brother.”
At this, Shu Qing’s brother Cheng was arrested, but in only a few days he managed to tunnel
out and escape.
According to royal order, the case was resubmitted to the zuoyin. Jun, the Duke of Tang,
announced: “The king has ordered that this suit be delegated to me and that judgment be
reached. When the prefect of Yin administered the oath, Qing fled and his brother Cheng
tunneled to freedom; the rest of the parties are in custody and I will shortly try them. The
king has ordered an official in charge to convey my orders, to bring justice to this long-
delayed case. The Yin resident Cheng is ordered to give testimony.” Four people of Yin, all
sharing the family name Chen, and six retainers of Yin being present, the zuoyin reported the
king’s order to Zi Wei Gong, that Shu Cheng of Yin be put to the oath, as written in a doc-
ument for proof. The case report continues:“When the witnesses on Cheng’s side came for-
ward, some were found to be unable to give testimony on his behalf: those belonging to the
same she (shrine association?), ward, or office, and those more closely related than first cousins
on the paternal side (congfu xiongdi).” Here the report unfortunately is cut short.
While the ultimate outcome of this case is unclear, these reports reveal that the official in
charge of a hearing routinely made the witnesses swear an oath. The formula used in the
report, “In X month, on Y day, the official in charge put them to the oath (wei zhi meng),”
closely follows the language of the Zhouli:
The procedure for the meng oath is carefully described in several of the ritual classics, as well
as in many stories in the Zuozhuan. In most descriptions, meng required oath takers to sacri-
fice an animal victim and smear its blood on their lips before announcing the oath to the
mingshen, the “far-seeing” spirits called on to enforce the truth and sincerity of the words
spoken.100
It is, of course, hard to say how much of the ceremony described in the Zhouli and other
classical texts was included in the oaths administered in the Chu judicial process. However,
this group of strips reveals the effort to use the threat of spiritual sanction to make oral testi-
mony as reliable as possible. In addition, the case of the plaintiff Shu Qing suggests that in
Chu, at least, each side could mobilize its own witnesses, rather than rely largely on the judge
to find the witnesses, as was the case in later imperial practice. Indeed, the large number of
witnesses described in this case makes one suspect that political, as well as judicial, factors may
have been at play in the confrontation.101 Perhaps the corollary to allowing the parties to
S u s a n We l d
• 94 •
present their own witnesses can be found in the rules we see in the same case strictly limit-
ing the people who could testify to those who did not have a close, preexisting relationship
and could therefore perhaps be presumed to be neutral.
Conclusion
The se documents offer a very useful “inside perspective” on the Chu legal institutions that
we glimpsed above in transmitted historical works.
First, they prove that Chu was indeed a complex society: the many official and unofficial
titles and status groups mentioned in the texts promise years of fruitful research on the nature
of Chu social stratification and the degree of government participation in it. One poignant
case about those who occupied the lowest rungs of Chu society contains the following report
by a local official:
On day jiachen, a prison worker in the silk warehouse of the king’s consort
escaped. . . . I [came upon him] and was about to seize him, when he stabbed
himself. I was able to prevent him [from doing much harm]; so reported.102
The prison worker’s own testimony explains that he had taken a knife from the warehouse to
try to cut off his leg irons and had managed to escape (into the street?) before being detected.
It is these glimpses of the realities of life in the layered societies of early China that make the
new documents especially valuable: through them, we can hear voices not felt to be worth
preserving in the historical documents. This prison worker’s story offers an ugly echo to Wu
Yu’s argument to the king that fugitives must be granted no mercy:“If these flee, and people
are allowed to shield them, there will be no one to fill the menial’s place.”
Coercive methods of social control are very apparent in these documents. As Chen Wei
has pointed out, the Chu authorities used a variety of methods of arrest, seizure, and deten-
tion to prevent defendants from absconding before trial. In the case of Shu Qing’s accusation,
one detainee committed suicide after arrest while another managed to escape from jail—an
indication of the harsh conditions one could expect to find there. In addition, collective
responsibility, at least of a defendant’s wife and children, seems to have been the rule in Chu
as elsewhere in the Zhou period.103
As to the Chu kings’ practice of appointments, Shao Tuo himself is an example of a high
appointee whose lineage originally split off from the royal house, taking Shao, the name of its
royal ancestor, for a lineage name.104 Shao Tuo’s divination texts prove that he did not lose
sight of this important connection with royalty. Again and again he has his diviners perform
the sidao sacrifice to his lineal ancestors, beginning with King Shao—his direct link to the
most powerful house of local ancestors.105 The persistence of strong lineages so close to the
royal house may have tended to dilute the Chu kings’ authority. Indeed, the case summaries
from Baoshan suggest that the Chu king’s power was less than absolute, because we see him
repeatedly sending down orders in specific cases without striking impact on the course of the
adjudication.
• 95 •
An interesting angle to the question of Chu social structure will be the role of popula-
tion and worker registers in both public and private social control. The emphasis on preserv-
ing the integrity of the registers looms large also in cases from the early Han period, showing
how high was the degree of continuity between late Warring States Chu and early Han prac-
tices. In addition, despite the Han bias toward blaming all coercive legal techniques on Qin,
the strips show that registration and collective responsibility in this region predated the Qin
conquest.
The state’s deep interest in the registers must have had an impact on naming practices in
Chu. It is very likely that research on the Chu naming system will help to clarify the Chu
social and political structure; perhaps such research will offer a way to understand the pro-
fusion of single surname groups, or zu, in the legal documents. Study of the cases on land
inheritance and household division may ultimately shed light on the organization of the Chu
elites. In this connection, it will be important to try to distinguish how far the cases found at
Baoshan reflect elite, rather than popular, legal culture and affairs.
The cases on land tenure and grain loans offer insights into the economic basis of the Chu
state, while analysis of the many place-names is already helping historical geographers in
understanding the effective political and cultural reach of Chu power at the turn of the
fourth century . The tomb’s evidence that the post of zuoyin required a considerable
amount of travel, and the mention of “traveling” or “temporary” capitals of the state, suggest
some of the methods Chu rulers used to try to maintain control over a state that had grown
so rapidly in the preceding centuries.
However, many of these legal characteristics seem, from other sources, to have been true
also in other Eastern Zhou states. A possibly distinctive aspect of Chu justice may be related
to the region’s reputation for religious excess and eccentricity. While the legal documents
now available from both Qin and early Han emphasize the use of careful interrogation—
backed by torture if necessary—as the way to secure truth in judicial proceedings, torture is
not apparent in Shao Tuo’s documents. Instead, judges and officials seem to have resorted to
the judicial oath, relying, perhaps, on their subjects’ deep belief in the existence of, and the
court’s access to, a complex pantheon of ancestors, ghosts, and spirits. Shu Qing’s case shows
how close such practice could come to being a mobilization of political support rather than
an adjudication of facts at issue: his opponents were able to summon more than two hundred
allies to join them in the oath. The fate of a judicial witness who gave false testimony under
oath is suggested by the inclusion of the mengzu, the spirit of a person under a curse, among
the spirits of unlucky humans—the bugu ghost of a stillborn child, the soldier fallen in war,
the sailor drowned at sea, and the man dead without an heir—whom Shao Tuo’s diviners
exorcize in their struggle to cure his fatal illness.106
The ultimate abandonment of the judicial oath in China may have accompanied a para-
digm shift in beliefs about causation in the period from the late Warring States to early Han.
It seems to have been during this period that Chinese medicine shifted its emphasis from
incantation and exorcism—an elite form of which is evident in Shao Tuo’s deathbed divi-
nations, prayers, and sacrifices—to recipes for rectifying the balance between yin and yang
influences.
S u s a n We l d
• 96 •
In the Laws, Plato explains why the judicial oath was no longer appropriate for the Greeks:
Like Greece in the fifth century , China was turning away from a world vision based on
belief in the gods and confidence in direct access to their help; Chu may simply have been
the last to make the change.
• 97 •
7
Towns and Trade
Cultural Diversity and Chu Daily Life
Heathe r A. Pete r s
T h e life of a Chu peasant most likely did not differ significantly from that of his
Neolithic ancestor. Farmers have lived in villages and cultivated wet rice south of the
Yellow River since the sixth millennium .
The original territory of the state of Chu was located in the Dan River valley and in the
upper reaches of the Han River valley—in other words, near the western end of the east-west
line denoted by the Han and Huai Rivers that is conventionally taken as the dividing line
between North China and South China. As Chu grew and spread eastward and southward,
its territory always lay primarily south of this Han-Huai line. Chu therefore was a “southern”
state not only in the eyes of its Central Plains neighbors to the north, but in fact geographi-
cally, topographically, climatologically, gastronomically, and (for these and other reasons) cul-
turally. Chu agriculture was based on paddy rice and on a wide array of vegetable crops; its
domestic animals included dogs, pigs, chickens, perhaps ducks, and water buffalo (in place of
the oxen of the Central Plains states); and it was richly supplied with varieties of bamboo and
undoubtedly used that plant to make a wide range of useful articles, including tools, weapons,
baskets, mats, and small household goods. Chu also, as we shall see, had access through trade
to a range of subtropical and tropical products, both for its own use and to trade northward.
In all of these respects, Chu was the heir to cultural patterns of long standing in the regions
south of the Han and Huai.
The earliest carbonized remains of paddy rice recently have been excavated at Pengtou-
shan in northern Hunan Province.1 The remains date to to and are associated
with crude, round-bottomed, unevenly fired undecorated pots. Archaeologists broadly divide
• 99 •
the ensuing millennia into three major cultural traditions: the Daxi (– ), the
Chujialing (ca. – ), and the Qinglongchuan Phase III, now more frequently
called Shijiahe (roughly – ).2 The lives of these farmers, especially those from the
Daxi and Chujialing cultures, were simple and unsophisticated. As far as we can tell from the
archaeological record, their sites are devoid of monumental religious centers, major art tradi-
tions, or any indication that social change was in the making. From the archaeological data on
the ceramic material associated with these cultures, we can outline an increasingly advanced
ceramic and stone tool technology. The Chujialing pottery is the most distinctive. Some of it
is eggshell thin and fashioned into tall, ring-footed cups created by using the wheel.
These Neolithic farmers lived in either square or round houses constructed of a combi-
nation of wood, bamboo, thatch, and some kind of mud or clay plaster.3 A few houses asso-
ciated with the Shijiahe culture were semisubterranean. Although Chinese archaeologists
have not excavated entire villages in the Hubei-Hunan region, we can speculate that villages
there were similar in size to excavated villages from the Yellow River region, such as Banpo
and Jiangzhai,4 which averaged between fifty to one hundred households.
The Chujialing farmers buried their dead in single pits in prone, extended positions.5
Children in the Chujialing culture were usually buried in urns, indicating that they were rit-
ually differentiated from adults, but other class distinctions are not yet evident. In a cemetery
belonging to the later Shijiahe culture, bodies were found in supine flexed positions.
Recent data from the Shijiahe sites, however, imply that certain changes were occurring
in this region. The discovery of elaborately detailed carved jade figurines,6 for example,
indicates a high level of technical expertise, which in turn strongly hints of developments that
may prove significant in understanding the emer-
gence of a civilization that contributed to what
later came to be “Chu.”
The transition from the second to the first mil-
lennium saw a number of important innova-
tions in the culture and society of archaic China.
The emergence of early states during the Shang
and Western Zhou periods, with their increasing
social stratification, occurred around the same time
as the introduction and use of bronze technology,
which was used mainly to make ritual vessels and
weapons. The peasants were no doubt affected by
these social changes and during the Zhou period
were incorporated into the state structure as slaves,
forced labor, and military conscripts.7 Although Figure 7.1 (Top, left) Daxi pottery cups. [after
there is evidence for the beginning of the use of Zhang Zhiheng, , fig.]
bronze and even iron for agricultural tools such as (Top, right) Shijiahe thin-legged pottery ding
sickles and hoes during the sixth century ,8 from Qinlongquan, Hubei. [after Hubei kaogu
xuehui, , , fig. .]
most farmers probably still grew their crops using (Bottom) Shijiahe jade carving from Xiaojiawuji
tools made from stone, bone, shell, and wood. site, Hubei. [after Zhang Xuqiu , fig. .]
Heather A. Peters
• 100 •
While peasant life may have remained more or less unchanged, or changed only very
slowly, urban life in the walled towns and capitals of the Eastern Zhou period was clearly
evolving. The towns and cities were centers of political and commercial activity.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 101 •
digging a trench and filling it with layers of stamped earth; this formed the core. Next, the
core was covered with a thick layer of sloping, pounded earth measuring about ten to fifteen
meters thick. Finally, an additional four-meter layer of “slope protection” was applied. This
outer layer provided support for the wall and also helped to carry off heavy rainfall. The walls
at Jinancheng were from thirty to forty meters thick at the base and narrowed to ten to
twenty meters at the top.
The outer wall at Jinancheng was interrupted by twenty-eight breaks. Eight of these mark
entryways into the city, and two of the eight were water gates. Two small rivers flowed though
the settlement providing city residents with a water supply and drainage as well as an alter-
native form of transportation. The other six gates opened onto roads leading into the city.
Wood from the remains of one of the gates over the waterways yielded a C- date of
± .
The interior space at Jinancheng, as expected, was broken up by a series of stamped-earth
platforms on top of which had been built the palaces and temples. Large quantities of unglazed
tiles were found on top of these platforms, suggesting that they supported different kinds of
buildings. Based upon post holes found in platform , archaeologists suggest that a palatial-
sized two-room building, measuring sixty-three meters east to west by fourteen meters north
to south, sat on top of this foundation. Stamped-earth platforms were concentrated in the
northeastern section of the city, suggesting to some16 that this served as the residential area for
the elites. Quantities of carbonized rice confirm a rice diet.
Certain areas within the walled enclosure were specialized craft areas. For example, pot-
tery kilns were found in the southwestern section of the site. They were also concentrated
along the banks of the two small rivers. Five of the kilns have already been excavated and
were found to have produced roof tiles and daily wares. Traces of a bronze foundry were also
located in the southwestern section of the site. Some scholars suggest that those industries
located near the palace area were controlled by the Chu court.17
The Jinancheng site is distinctive for the large quantity of wells found within the city
walls. Archaeologists reported finding more than four hundred constructed of various mate-
rials: entirely of earth, with ceramic collars (the majority), with wooden collars, and with
bamboo collars. The bottoms of some of the wells were covered with a layer of tiles. Foot
notches found in the walls of the wells very likely served the workman who dug the wells or
cleaned and repaired them. The wells were also filled with shards from different kinds of jars
—jars that may have been used to draw water from the well or to store water. Chinese archae-
ologists have suggested that wells served as sources of water as well as cool storage areas for
food products during the long, hot summers.18
Another large and well-excavated Chu city is Shouchun in Shouxian, Anhui. Shouchun
covered a huge area of . square kilometers, illustrating the trend of major political cen-
ters to increase in size during the Eastern Zhou period.19
Forts were generally very small settlements; most were about . kilometers square, and,
because of their military and protective function, they were usually bordered by natural
defenses in the landscape and were consequently less regular in shape. Two examples of forts
are Caodian Fangcheng20 in the Xiaogan region of eastern Hubei and Caowang Zuicheng in
Heather A. Peters
• 102 •
southeastern Hubei.21 Caodian Fangcheng, which measures . square kilometers, is walled
with battlements on three sides and a moat on the outside. Caowang Zuicheng is only .
square kilometers in size. It is surrounded by well-preserved walls and is located near Tong-
lushan, an ancient copper mine active during the Eastern Zhou period, suggesting it might
have been associated with protecting Chu control of bronze resources. Traces of metal cast-
ing were uncovered inside the walls.
From archaeological data we know that the urban elite lived in large buildings and were
supported by a staff of artisans; textual descriptions provide more details of their lifestyles. For
example, the Zhanguoce describes the northeastern metropolis of Linzi, the capital of the Qi
state (whose archaeological remains cover an area of thirty square kilometers22 and were con-
temporary to the Chu site of Jinancheng). Supporting a population of around seventy thou-
sand households, its streets were so busy that the carriages rubbed rims and people rubbed
shoulders. Its people were wealthy; they played musical instruments, gambled, raced hounds,
and played ball.23
Although the bustle of Chu cities may have been similar, we do get some hints from the
texts that Chu cities were architecturally distinctive and recognizably different from their
northern counterparts. Chu palaces and towers were a source of admiration and imitation. In
one tale, King Ling of Chu (r. – ) finished building a tower and invited other lords
and princes to see it.24 Duke Xiang of the northeastern state of Lu (home of Confucius),
upon his return from a visit, insisted upon constructing at great expense a “Chu palace.” 25
King Ping of Chu (r. – ) was criticized for his building excesses, which placed a
financial burden on the people.26 Given the pride and expense afforded buildings, we can
conjecture that Chu capitals were architectural splendors.
The growth of urbanization and the splendor of the urban lifestyle in Chu was linked to
Chu’s control of foreign trade. While the archaeological record includes little material evi-
dence of the commercial activity that changed the face of Chinese ancient cities during the
Eastern Zhou period, textual descriptions can once again provide some hints. The Zhanguoce
alludes to speciality markets, such as the sandalwood market,27 and other texts of the period,
for example the Spring and Autumn Annals,28 hint at the activities of a lively and entrepre-
neurial merchant class.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 103 •
damask canopies stretch overhead . . .
all kinds of good food are ready . . .
bitter, salt, sour, hot, and sweet . . .
ribs of the fatted ox, tender and succulent;
stewed turtle and roast kid, geese, braised chicken,
fried honeycakes of rice flour . . .
jade-like wine . . .
the lovely girls are drunk with wine. . . .29
In contrast to this vision of urban splendor, we see that the majority of everyday ceramic
ware, found in both burial and settlement sites, is very plain and ordinary. In the Spring and
Autumn period potters favored wares made with either a fine brownish paste or a sand-
tempered gray paste. Both kinds were relatively high fired.30 The ceramics found at the Hubei
settlement sites of Jijiahu (Dangyang), Jinancheng, and Yicheng consist of a variety of gray,
brownish-gray, black, and reddish pastes.31 The Jijiahu site included some black-slipped wares.32
Most of the pottery was crudely made, either by hand or by slow wheel. The surfaces of
the wares were either plain or decorated with cord marks, bowstrings, or simple geometric
patterns such as hatching or crisscross marks. The types included cooking vessels such as
steamers (types li and zeng) and pots called fu; an assortment of serving vessels such as various
kinds of bowls, tall-stemmed cups, and the more elegant long-necked vases called hu; and
different kinds of storage containers such as large urns called weng and smaller fat-bellied jars
called guan. The wide distribution of these very similar wares throughout the core region of
the Chu state implies that the wares were made for mass consumption, and most likely house-
holds purchased them at one of the local markets. We can imagine that these kinds of un-
glazed ceramics were used on a daily basis in the households of all urban dwellers since they
were the only kind of wares found at settlement sites.
The aristocratic Chu town resident, however, also used expensive bronze ritual vessels and
refined lacquer cups and bowls, and dressed in exquisite embroidered silks and gauzes. There
are many hundreds of examples of bronze ritual vessels from Chu tombs. In the tombs, the
distinctive long-legged bronze ding tripods (fig. .) were usually accompanied by an assort-
ment of wine vessels (types zun and hu) and serving vessels (types fu and dou). Lacquerware
eventually exceeded bronze in value.33 According to the Yantielun (Discourses on salt and
iron), a first-century text, one lacquer cup was worth ten bronze cups. The text further
points out that producing lacquer was very labor intensive, a trait that undoubtedly enhanced
its value.34
It is the lacquerware, however, that helps to reinforce our impression of the elegance and
sophistication of Chu elite life. The large quantities of lacquer objects retrieved from Chu
burials in southern Henan, Hubei, and Hunan argue convincingly that although lacquerware
is not unique to Chu, it occupied a position of unusual importance in Chu material culture.
For example, more than items (approximately two-fifths of the burial objects) excavated
from the Yutaishan cemetery in Hubei were lacquerware,35 and of the , grave goods
unearthed from Tianxingguan , a large-scale Chu tomb in Hubei, were lacquerware.36
Heather A. Peters
• 104 •
Lacquerware came in all shapes and sizes, from functional vessels such as elegant eared
wine cups (fig. .) to imitations of ritual vessels like ding and dou (pl. ), to items unique to
lacquer, such as grotesque guardian figurines (fig. .), reclining deer, and drumstands crafted
in the shape of birds (figs. ., .). Lacquerware was even fashioned into handles for weapons.
The exquisite geometric designs on these objects illustrate the perfection of the lacquer tra-
dition in Chu.
The songs of the Chuci also praised the rich bedspreads and curtains found in the royal
bedchambers. Because of surprisingly good preservation in some of the Chu tombs in Hubei
and Hunan, archaeologists have been able to retrieve and reconstruct some of the fabrics used
by Chu aristocrats. These sumptuous silk textiles heavily embroidered with elaborate and
intricate designs and the delicate fine-meshed gauzes completely accord with our mind’s
image of Chu luxury (fig. .).37
Fortunately there are also well-preserved examples of Chu clothing.38 Not only do we
have examples of robes and garments from Chu tombs, but several Chu tomb figurines
dressed in cloth clothes and adorned with hair have survived (pl. ). From these we can see
that during the Warring States period the dress and hairstyle of people living in Chu were
very similar to those of persons living in the Central Plains region. The assertion of elites in
the northern states that their clothing styles were uniquely civilized and that all others were
barbaric seems, at first glance, to have provoked no dissent in Chu. Both men and women
wore a wide-sleeved robe secured at the waist with a sash. Men wore their long hair bound
up with a hairpin. They also wore a variety of hats.
Yet within this overall similarity between northern and Chu styles there were small dif-
ferences, and those must be regarded as significant. Clothing is frequently a marker of ethnic-
ity;39 any ethnographer working in southwest China today can immediately identify a specific
ethnic group based upon the type, color, decor, and weave of their head dresses and cloth-
ing.40 Chu styles would have been readily identifiable as such in their own time.
There are also hints of more radical differences in dress revealed in Chu pictorial art. For
example, some of the more fantastic and whimsical figures illustrated on the lacquerware
have tent-like dresses or tunics with ragged hem-
lines, apparently worn over trousers. There is also
some question as to whether or not Chu men
tattooed their faces, a custom prevalent among
the Wu and the Yue groups.41 Some of the
painted wooden burial figurines excavated from
Changsha tombs have dots on their faces (fig.
.), which some scholars suggest represent tat-
toos.42 However, other pictorial art representing
Chu men does not depict tattoos, although many
of the men depicted do have mustaches. It is pos-
sible that the figurines with the facial “tattoo” Figure 7.2 Decor featuring a tattooed man and
animals on Spring and Autumn bronze you from
marks represent Wu-Yue people living within Gangkou, Hunan [after Hunansheng bowuguan
Chu society. , , fig. .-]
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 105 •
By the Warring States period the Chu aristocrat was living a life not dissimilar to that of his
fellow aristocrats to the north, but certain aspects of his culture, both in content and in style,
serve to remind us that the Chu noble was not exactly the same as his northern counterpart.
During the Eastern Zhou period the people living within Chu cities formed a complex
social fabric. At the top were the titled aristocracy, most of whom were linked by kinship ties.
In the middle sat a growing middle class of merchants and lower-ranked government officials,
and at the bottom, as always, were the lower classes, whose lives may have been culturally dis-
tinct yet were intertwined with the Chu elites. In themselves these divisions are not remark-
able; they are social distinctions found throughout the China of the time, which was a com-
plex state society with a class structure. But the numerous excavated burials provide us with
a means for sorting out broader cultural distinctions within Chu society.
It has long been understood that differences found among the dead reflect differences
found among the living.43 Of the more than three thousand burials located in the twenty-five
locations surrounding Jiangling, Hubei, about eight hundred have mounds. Forty of the eight
hundred have mounds taller than six meters with diameters of at least forty meters. The rest
of the mounds are lower and smaller.44 Thus it seems clear that the presence or absence of
mounds, together with the size of those burials with mounds, is an important correlate of
social distinction among Chu burials, just as it is for contemporary tombs in the north. We
cannot forget that the labor required to construct these large-scale tombs and their mounds
also serves as a marker of the authority and status the individual had in life.
If we follow the classification of Chu tombs by archaeologist Guo Dewei, the stratification
of Chu society becomes evident. He divides Chu tombs into five feudal categories: the royal
family, upper-ranking officials (landowners or enfeoffed lords), lower-ranking officials, the shi
(a class derived from the landless sons of the aristocracy), and commoners.45 Descriptions of
examples of these tombs and their contents is a further reflection of urban life.
No Chu royal burials have yet been scientifically excavated, but we can assume they will
be the largest and most grand. Based upon the remains of the destroyed and looted burials
belonging to the late Chu kings in the Shouxian, Anhui, region and from the burials belong-
ing to high-ranking elite, the royal burials will not only be lavish in scale, structure, and burial
goods, but will also be accompanied by human sacrifice and sacrificial horse and chariot pits.
The burials of high-ranking ministers and enfeoffed lords were mounded and had tomb
paths. Their outer coffins generally measured from seven to ten square meters and were
divided into five or seven side and head compartments. Bronze ritual vessels were the most
important category of burial good, although ceramic vessels imitating bronze vessels have also
been unearthed. In addition, there were bronze bells and chimes, weapons, and horse and
chariot trappings. Lacquer and jade objects also figured prominently. There may have been
human sacrifice. Examples of these burials include Xiasi ,46 Tianxingguan ,47 Changtaiguan
,48 and Baoshan .49
Tianxingguan , for example, just outside Jiangling, is a large tomb with a mound. The
mound is . meters high and covers a tomb pit measuring by meters at ground level.
The walls of the tomb pit are graded in a series of fifteen step-ledges, and the tomb path lead-
ing down into the tomb is nineteen meters long. The surface of the outer coffin chamber is
Heather A. Peters
• 106 •
. square meters; it is divided into seven smaller compartments. The coffin chamber con-
tained a set of three coffins. The tomb had already been pillaged before archaeologists exca-
vated it, yet , burial items still remained. Among them were bamboo strips giving an
inventory of the goods as well as the name and title of the tomb occupant, Lord Fancheng of
Dishang (Dishang Jun Fancheng), who had been enfeoffed by a Chu king during the middle
Warring States period.50
Another example is Baoshan Tomb , the source of the inscribed bamboo strips (see
Weld, chapter ) that have so greatly enriched our understanding of the Chu legal system.
The remaining mound of the tomb is . meters high and has a diameter of meters. The
mound covers a pit measuring . by . meters at the top and . by . meters at the
bottom. It has a . meter long tomb path; the tomb walls descend in a series of fourteen
step-ledges. The grave goods included a lavish quantity of bronze ritual vessels, many of
which were inlaid with gold and silver, along with weapons, pottery, lacquerware, and textiles,
as well as bamboo strips.51 Inscriptions found on objects in the tomb identify the occu-
pant as Shao Tuo, a senior official (zuoyin) of the Chu state. The tomb can be precisely dated
to .
Tombs of lower-ranking officials included both ones with and without mounds. Most
have a tomb path. The outer coffin chambers measure four to six meters in length and are
divided into three to five compartments. Mortuary goods include both bronze ritual vessels
and ceramic wares made to imitate bronze vessels. Most burials contained drums and lutes, but
no bells or chimes. Chariot axles and horses’ bits probably symbolized horse and chariot sac-
rifices. There were lacquerware and bronze weapons in all burials. Examples of burials of this
rank include Wangshan ,52 Tengdian ,53 Niuxingshan and ,54 Liuchengqiao ,55 Baizifan
,56 and Baishizi .57 Most of the burials contained wooden figurines; a few of them had
human sacrifice—for example, Baizifan , Liuchengqiao , and Baishizi . The scale of these
burials pales in comparison to Lord Fancheng’s burial. One of them, Wangshan , had a
mound measuring only . meters tall with a diameter of meters. The mouth of the pit
was . by . meters; the walls were notched into five steps, and the tomb path extended
. meters in length. There were only burial goods, of which were bronze.
Recently analyzed and published inscribed bamboo strips unearthed from the tomb now
reveal the occupant to have been Zhao Gu, a daifu (senior official) of the first rank.58
The majority of the over five thousand burials excavated in Henan, Hubei, and Hunan
belong to the shi (petty aristocracy) and commoners. Burials belonging to the shi usually do
not have mounds, although some have tomb paths. They usually have one outer coffin cham-
ber and one inner coffin. Their outer coffin chambers measure . to . meters in length and
are divided into only one or two compartments. The most important category of burial good
is imitation bronze vessels made from pottery. A few burials contain musical instruments such
as drums and zithers, and more than half have bronze weapons and lacquer objects. The sim-
plest burials belong to commoners. Many are single-coffin tombs; some do not have a coffin.
Initially, burial goods were simply utilitarian ceramics, but after the middle Warring States
period, ceramics imitating bronze ritual vessels also appeared. Most graves contained a small
amount of lacquerware and bronze weapons.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 107 •
Diversity within Chu Culture and Society
Chu culture, as defined in the archaeological record, is a complex mix of diverse cultures.
The current trend is to view Chu culture as a melting pot of diverse elements, melding its
own indigenous traits with those from the Central Plains culture from the north, Ba and Shu
from the west, the so-called “ Yue” from the south, and Wu-Yue from the east.59 Chu soci-
ety, however, was not simply a mix of these elements, but was also a plural society in which a
variety of ethnic groups each maintained its own distinctiveness while living side by side in
the same area.60
Chu as a state did not consist of a single cultural unit. As in many states, Chu society was
formed of hierarchical relationships between different groups that bonded them into patron-
client relationships. The Chu state not only assimilated many of the differing elements within
its initial boundaries, but as it expanded, pushing east, west, and south, it came into contact
with still other groups, which it proceeded to absorb or accommodate.
Archaeological evidence for this melange of ethnic groups can be seen among the burial
remains. Graves that are clearly non-Chu appear together with classic Chu tombs. In order to
distinguish what is not Chu among these burials, it is essential to have a definition of a “Chu”
type burial. Although some regional variation is present, the overwhelming similarity of the
structure and mortuary goods of the thousands of burials surrounding former Chu settle-
ments in Henan, Hubei, and Hunan serves as a diagnostic criterion to identify Chu culture
(see Xu, chapter ).61
Heather A. Peters
• 108 •
The presence of Yue in Chu society is archaeologically evident not only along the borders
and frontiers of the Chu state, but also in its centers.63 For instance, the Yutaishan cemetery
near Jiangling is a classic example of a Chu burial ground. However, particular artifacts among
the burial goods suggest contact with other cultures. For example, certain stylistic traits reflect
northern Central Plains influence, such as the long-legged li and ding and long-necked hu,
which are similar to ones found at Zhongzhoulu in Henan. Other artifacts, however, reflect
the presence (not simply the influence) of outside cultural elements—for example, the six
Yue-style ding found in the Chu burials at the Yutaishan cemetery. From burial at Macheng
in eastern Hubei, a porcelaneous jar covered with stamped geometric designs was excavated
along with ding, dui, and hu vases of typical Chu style.64 From burial at Tianxingguan, Jiang-
ling, a Yue-style spearhead was unearthed from what is a classic elite Chu burial. The inclu-
sion of these non-Chu artifacts in Chu burials provides only ambiguous evidence about
cultural plurality, but it clearly points to Chu contact with other cultural groups.
Archaeological sites in Hunan, however, are much more explicit in indicating that mixed
populations of Yue and Chu people lived at the sites. At these sites, graves that are clearly non-
Chu coexist in the same burial grounds with classic Chu burials.65 Many of these sites,
including Changsha,66 also contain burials with contents that include both Chu and Yue arti-
facts—suggesting, not unreasonably, that the people who lived in these frontier regions were
not bound by rigid ethnic or cultural boundaries in terms of the items they used.
Traveling west from Jiangling along the Yangtze around three hundred to four hundred
kilometers into modern-day Sichuan, we find an area long associated by Chinese historians
and archaeologists with the Ba culture. Traditionally, Chinese historians and archaeologists
have associated nearly the entire eastern portion of Sichuan, extending into western Hubei
along the Yangtze River, with the Ba people. Archaeological data confirm a cultural distinc-
tion between the remains of these people and those of the Chu; data also suggest that the two
groups were in contact and maintained some kind of exchange relationship.67 While textual
evidence is sparse, references to Ba in the Zuozhuan suggest military and diplomatic contact
between the Ba and the Chu, as well as alliances forged through marriage.68
Archaeological evidence of Ba-Chu intermingling consists mostly of weapons located in
the Chu-dominated region of western Hubei along the Yangtze River.69 For example, there
is a particular bronze axe-like weapon called ge by some70 and qi by others.71 This weapon was
excavated from a pit grave in Jingmen, Hubei, together with a Ba-style flat-hilted sword. The
burial was grouped with four other burials containing typical Chu burial objects.72 Willow-
leaf, flat-hilted swords have also been retrieved from other sites in western Hubei, from the
region extending from Ziguixian to Yichang and Shijiangxian. A so-called Ba burial was also
reported unearthed from the Dangyang region in Hubei.73 Characteristic Ba-type objects,
such as a waisted ax (type yue) embossed with a tiger design and flat-hilted swords incised with
tiger designs, have also been found in Chu burials in Changde and Yiyang in Hunan.74 The
juxtaposition of Ba-style burials alongside Chu-style burials suggests that while many of the
weapons could be products of gift exchange, barter, or war booty, people from the two cul-
tural groups did coexist.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 109 •
Trade during the Eastern Zhou Period
Trade was a primary force behind Chu expansion, especially into the southern tropics. The
Chu state, located both north and south of the Yangtze River, sat on an interface between the
south and the Central Plains. Given the fact that they played an integral part in the interaction
spheres of the north, it is perhaps natural that entrepreneurs from Chu served as intermedi-
aries in facilitating the movement of desired exotic products from western and southern fron-
tier regions to the north.
Trade, or, more broadly, exchange, has always been a driving force of societies, whether
complex or simple. Markets, in particular, are a focal point of human interaction. In China,
ancient trade networks connected vast expanses of land, stretching across Central Asia and
reaching down into modern Southeast Asia, crossing lands that only later became part of the
Chinese empire.
Trade existed on different levels.
First, there was local trade, the very
old tradition of central market towns
that link rural villages into economic Figure 7.3 Bronze cowry-shaped “ant-nose” coins [after Liu
networks providing the villagers and Zhiyi : ]
urban dwellers with the products they
lack. These towns also served as important social centers. Markets of this sort were often held
on fixed days of the week or month. A glimpse of the role markets may have played in an
ancient local market economy can be found in ethnographic material drawn from the modern
Xishuangbanna Autonomous Region in Yunnan Province.75 There are small daily markets in
nearly every town supplying basic foodstuffs and supplies. Certain roles seem to be associated
with specific ethnic groups; for example, the Dai bring in vegetable produce from their gar-
dens, while the Han Chinese tend to be the butchers. However, the weekly Sunday or Mon-
day markets are special. Dai women who do not regularly bring products to the market will
find something to bring on Sunday. For example, they will make special sticky-rice sweets,
bring in some cloth, or sell eggs or vegetables. The markets are more festive on these days, and
the social nature of the event is very noticeable.
In ancient China during the Eastern Zhou period local markets that may have been simi-
lar in nature to those of present-day Xishuangbanna undoubtedly played an important role in
the lives of the people. Chinese texts describe the lively nature of market centers during the
Eastern Zhou period.76 We can imagine the farmers coming into town on market days to ex-
change their goods and to enjoy the sights of the town. The marketplaces brought together
people of different social levels as well as of different cultural groups, including farmers, town
dwellers, and wandering itinerant traders who brought goods from distant lands.
Long-distance trade may have functioned on at least two different levels. The first is the
individual, who may have operated on a very local level, simply moving goods from one part
of the country to the other, although in doing so he may have traveled great distances. This
lifestyle persisted into modern times among the Haw, Chinese muleteer traders who trans-
ported goods from Yunnan down into Southeast Asia and back again until . Some long-
Heather A. Peters
• 110 •
distance traders may also have had more prestige and operated on much higher state levels as
agents for official commerce. Second, there was the state tribute system, in which the state
itself required groups within its territory to bring in specific products on a regular basis. The
state, in exchange, distributed “gifts” to the people bringing tribute.77 Paleographical evidence
from the Warring States period suggests an elaborate system of government-regulated trade.78
In looking at historical sources, it is apparent that although private merchants and traders
existed, some merchants sustained a closer relationship with the rulers and the state than
others. For example, during the eighth century the Zheng ruler made an agreement with
the merchants of Zheng. The merchants had helped the ruler to establish new territory, and
under the agreement promised not to rebel. In exchange, the ruler of Zheng promised not to
meddle in the affairs of the merchants.79
The “Biographies of the Money-Makers” (Huozhi) chapter of the Shiji lists the various
economic resources of the different regions and how these resources were used and distrib-
uted (as of the Western Han period, when the Shiji was written). The chapter essentially
describes the tribute system; it also abounds with stories of how specific individuals made
their fortunes, and how they sometimes used their wealth to help their rulers. The chapter
attempts to explain the principles of Eastern Zhou period economics, emphasizing the
motive of profit (li). It also describes the major economic centers, the people who lived in
those centers, and their most important economic products; and it goes on to outline trade
networks and the major communication routes such as roads, rivers, and canals. (In dealing
with Chu, for example, it describes the region’s main products and its extensive trade with
adjacent areas.) Its focus on the persuasive theme that trade is a legitimate path to success and
power suggests a tension between the rising merchant class and a government used to greater
control over the economy.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 111 •
was permitted to transport only the amount of goods that could be carried by boats,
carts, horses, and , men. Further, he and his retainers were prohibited from carrying
weapons. There was no indication, either on the tallies or from the texts, whether or not
Prince E was trading on behalf of the king. It is certain, however, that he traded under royal
protection, because he was carrying valuable goods without the benefit of his own armed
men to guard him. We can only assume that Chu routes were protected from banditry by the
ruler himself.
Two routes are outlined, one by land and the other by water. The water route travels from
Echeng along the Yangtze, passes through Lake Dongting down along the Xiang River, and
returns to Ying (which at the time the tallies were issued was probably located in Shouxian,
Anhui). The land route also starts out from Echeng and terminates at Ying.
The inscriptions on these tallies also confirm other economic information found in con-
temporary historical sources, for example concerning taxes. There were possibly three cate-
gories of taxes: () the li tax levied on lodgings; () the bu business tax; and () the border tax
paid when crossing outposts and stations.81 The collection of taxes by the local elite certainly
contributed to the growth of rich citizens beyond the direct control of the Chu court.
Heather A. Peters
• 112 •
northern Vietnam. The region was famous for its exotic products, such as kingfisher feathers,
pearls, tortoises, aromatic and medicinal plants, and fragrant barks and resins.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 113 •
Chu—for example, Tonglushan in southeastern Hubei,99 and farther east, Ruichang in north-
western Jiangxi.100
Heather A. Peters
• 114 •
ited and even colonized by the Han period in order to secure access to its medicinal products,
pearls, tortoise shell, ivory, and colorful or scented woods.110 Chu pearls were unquestionably
from tropical waters; the Hepu district in coastal Guangxi Province and Hainan Island were
the most likely sources. Kingfisher feathers, likewise, were tropical products. According to the
Han Shu, the tribute demanded from Chao Tuo, king of the Southern Yue, included one
thousand kingfisher feathers, ten rhinoceros horns, five hundred purple cowries, forty pairs of
live kingfishers, and two pairs of peacocks.111
Archaeologically, there is unfortunately little material evidence for these products, either
in Chu sites or in sites in Guangdong or Guangxi. Kingfisher feathers are highly perishable,
leaving little expectation that they would be preserved in the archaeological record. The
complete absence of traces of rhinoceros horn is somewhat mysterious, although it is much
more perishable than bone. One must also consider the possibility that it was already being
ground up for medicinal purposes at this early date. In a non-Chu burial excavated near
Luoyang in Henan, a sword was unearthed that is classified as coming from Chu because of
its inscription, which reads: fanyang zhi jin, “metal of Fanyang.” Fanyang, which belonged to
Chu, was located in Xincai, Henan. The sword was sheathed in an ivory scabbard inlaid with
pearls.112
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 115 •
Jiang, a small river that linked up with the Bei Jiang. Pass was near Pass . The difference
between them was that the terrain on the Hunan side of the pass was rugged and less easily
traveled. Pass connected Hunan with Guangxi via a land route. Pass seems potentially the
most likely candidate for this early travel. Located just north of Xing’an in eastern Guangxi,
it connects the Xiang River with the Gui River, which in turn flows into the Xi Jiang (West
River), which leads to Panyu. The short stretch of land between the Xiang and Gui Rivers
was eliminated by Qin Shihuangdi in , when he built the Xing’an canal immediately
after becoming emperor in .114 The speed at which Qin Shihuangdi built this canal sug-
gests that this particular route was already well known.
Heather A. Peters
• 116 •
river traders proceeded along the Xi River into Guangdong Province and southward down
to Panyu. The proliferation of Warring States period burials containing high-status bronze
goods along all four of the rivers running south to Panyu in Guangdong suggests that the
entire region benefited from this trade.
Conclusion
By the Spring and Autumn and Warring States periods the region controlled by Chu had
long adopted and assimilated many of the cultural traits of the Central Plains. While traces of
indigenous culture are found within the archaeological record of the territory of Chu in its
early historical phases, they are not in themselves sufficiently significant to mark Chu as hav-
ing a distinct cultural tradition. Yet aspects of Chu civilization did clearly reflect meaningful
cultural differences.
Chu’s distinctiveness lies in the interstatial ecological niche it filled. Geographically, the
Chu state lay on an interface between north and south China. It was centered, as outlined
above, in the Jiangnan, a region that connected the temperate Central Plains to the north with
the tropical Lingnan valleys and hills to its south. Chu straddled the Yangtze River, which
serves as another marker separating the north from the south.
But this niche is more than one of simply linking two geographical regions; it is also eco-
nomic and political. Based upon the current data, it seems extremely likely that Chu con-
trolled access to certain easily transportable, high-value goods such as feathers, pearls, ivory,
resins, and gold, but more important, Chu served as the mechanism for moving these goods
from one place to another. In doing so, the Chu state provided much-needed services to the
other states. It also must have managed to make a profit out of these activities; otherwise, there
would have been little incentive to undertake what were clearly dangerous and risky ventures.
During this period none of the other states had the political and economic sophistication,
combined with the geographical location, to carry out this role. The role gave the Chu state
a stature and significance that allowed it to assimilate the culture of the Central Plains while
maintaining a certain degree of independence manifested in the details of its culture. For
example, the settlement pattern of Chu towns and cities did not differ significantly from
those in the Central Plains, but the design of its buildings and palaces did. The Chu elite used
ritual bronze vessels like their counterparts in the north, but they indulged themselves with
the luxuries of the goods produced in or transported through Chu. In sum, the unique eco-
nomic role played by Chu helped to produce and reinforce its individuality.
To w n s a n d Tr a d e
• 117 •
Part III
The Spirit
of Chu
8
Characteristics of
Late Chu Religion
John S. Major
N ot very much is known about Chu religion during most of the Zhou period. As
Cook has shown in chapter , during the first centuries of the existence of the Chu
state the rulers of Chu were ultraorthodox in their performance of Zhou-style ancestral rites.
Later, as the center of power in Chu moved eastward and authority fell increasingly into the
hands of locally based aristocratic “advisors” to the throne, such rites were coopted by mem-
bers of that aristocratic class for their own ends. Nevertheless, the ancestral rites practiced in
Chu were clearly related to beliefs, liturgies, and ritual norms common to the Central Plains
states.
Because the population of Chu, throughout the state’s long duration, was ethnically and
linguistically heterogeneous,1 it is reasonable to assume that there existed a range of local reli-
gious beliefs and practices at least among the common people, and probably extending into
the ranks of local notables as well. Hardly any evidence of such beliefs and practices exists
before the Warring States period, however, and it remains sparse until the very end of the
Warring States and into the Han period.
• 121 •
beyond the supposed region in question. The same will be true for material culture, tomb
architecture, and most other fields; some Chinese scholars have recently pointed out, for
example, that some supposedly distinctive late Chu tombs share many elements of Qin tomb
architecture.2 On the other hand, early China was a very diverse place with strong and dis-
tinctive regional differences; this is manifestly true on the basis of a wide range of evidence.
The point requires further sharpening. The regional diversity of ancient China seems
obvious, just as does the regional diversity of China today. Yet in Zhou dynasty China, as
today, a “national” culture tended to mask regional differences at the elite level. Diplomats,
philosophers, and free-lance political advisors (all likely to be members of at least the petty
aristocracy) traveled widely in ancient China and generally seem to have felt reasonably at
home culturally at whatever court they happened to be visiting. This notional uniformity of
elite culture, in contrast to apparent cultural differences between regions of China, is fraught
with opportunities for misunderstanding—and again this is as true for modern China as it is
for the ancient period.
Von Falkenhausen has stated that “the distinctiveness of Chu music remains elusive, if not
illusory.”3 He makes it clear that in his view the illusory nature of Chu music extends to Chu
culture in general. This is a highly conservative position, based on the factual observation that
most literary and archaeological remains for early and mid-Zhou Chu relate to the Chu cul-
tural elite—which had much in common with Zhou elites everywhere. This conservative
position is also, in my view, highly misleading, for several reasons: first, the cosmopolitan Chu
elite ruled local populations whose cultures undoubtedly were marked by strongly distinctive
regional characteristics. Second, in the later stages of Chu’s political existence, the Chu elite
itself became increasingly assimilated to the local populations of Chu’s recently acquired east-
ern and southern lands. Third, therefore, it is reasonable to make careful inferences from late
Chu evidence about the cultural characteristics of subelite Chu populations in earlier periods.
This chapter will examine a number of features of late Chu religion that can be described
and analyzed with some degree of confidence. It will then go on to suggest ways in which
Chu religious beliefs contributed important elements to the changing religious world of Han
China broadly conceived. In the course of this investigation we shall also explore some links
between the Chu religious world and other parts of East Asia extending beyond the Chinese
cultural sphere.
Before inquiring further into the specific nature of Chu religion, however, it will be use-
ful to take stock of what we know and how we know it. The most fundamental question to
be raised in this regard is the extent to which we can isolate something called “Chu religion”
at all. In order to define the part it is useful to begin by defining the whole. I take the mini-
mum essential features of early Chinese religion—shared throughout the Zhou cultural
sphere of influence—to include the following:
John S. Major
• 122 •
• For persons in every station in life, a sense of religious obligation to worship
and honor ancestors, and to provide a male heir for the continuation of the
family line
• A religious obligation to provide a proper funeral for one’s parents, including
grave goods and other ritual elements appropriate to their hierarchical status
in society, with as much lavish pomp as was financially possible and ritually
permissible
• Belief that each person has a complex soul—with both corporeal and ethereal
components—often but not necessarily thought of as distinct po and hun souls
• State-sponsored rites of sacrifice and propitiation to high divinities, such as
gods of the four directions or the four (or eight) winds, and the god of the soil
• Popular belief in, and rites directed toward, deities of local mountains, rivers,
old trees, and the like, whether or not such rites were sanctioned by the state
• A requirement that religious buildings (including tombs) and the rites con-
ducted in or about them be properly oriented in space in order to be effica-
ciously used
Religious beliefs and practices in Chu apparently encompassed all of these “Chinese” ele-
ments, but added special emphases to some and incorporated additional elements not known
from elsewhere.
• 123 •
gion” thus becomes very complex.4 To complicate matters still further, there are occasional
tantalizing hints that Chu religious practices preserved some elements of Shang dynasty prac-
tices that had been eclipsed in the Central States by the Zhou ascendency.
Yet despite whatever difficulties one might have in giving “Chu religion” a precise defi-
nition, by the late Warring States period it becomes clear from both the textual and the
archaeological record that the religious life of Chu was extraordinary indeed. A plethora of
monster-masked gods, snake-wielding shamans, brawling cosmic deities, whistling tiger-
fanged goddesses, and other remarkable beings give evidence of the diversity and special qual-
ities of the Chu pantheon—a pantheon confirmed in the liturgical and celebratory poems of
the Chuci and in the iconography of Chu ritual and funerary art. Specific evidence for late
Chu beliefs and ideas is found in a number of texts—including the early strata of Shanhaijing,
Chuci, parts of the Mawangdui corpus, and of the Huainanzi—that can be correlated with
iconographic evidence from well-attested archaeological sites.
Is this, then,“Chu religion”? Yes—but the affirmative needs to be modified immediately
by a reminder that the evidence here is strongest for the late, eastern-and-southern phase of
Chu. The degree to which the features of Chu religion described below can be projected
back in time and westward in space depends in part on one’s taste for inference and, perhaps,
for speculation. I would propose that Chu religion is characterized by at least the following
special features that define its regional distinctiveness as compared with the mainstream reli-
gious tradition(s) of the Central Plains states:
John S. Major
• 124 •
Neolithic invention of animal emblems for the directions (of which the [Bluegreen] Dragon
of the East and the [White] Tiger of the West appear to be the earliest). The extraordinarily
early origin of these spatial emblems is confirmed by a burial at Puyang, northern Henan,5
dating to ca. ; in addition to a dragon and tiger made of a shell mosaic flanking the
east and west sides, respectively, of the interred corpse, there is at the corpse’s feet a tree made
of bones and shells, the most plausible interpretation of which is as an axial image represent-
ing cosmic centrality (perhaps the north pole). Also of great antiquity is the system of lunar
lodges (xiu), which the Chinese devised in order to specify the location of various bodies in
the heavens; it dates to no later than the late third millennium .6 A third instance of this
early concern with directionality is a Neolithic bone plaque inscribed with an eight-pointed
figure that apparently indicates the eight points of the compass.7
These examples are not specific to Chu, but there is ample evidence from later times for
spatial orientation as a key element in Chu religion. There is, from the Shang period (excavated
at Ningxiang near Changsha, Hunan), a magnificent square ding with a strikingly human-like
taotie image on each of its four sides (fig. .). This ding recalls a tradition in which Confucius
was asked if it were true that the Yellow Emperor had four faces.8 Whether or not one chooses
to associate the Changsha fangding with the Yellow Emperor, its imagery of orientation to the
four quarters is unmistakable. Another example is the lacquer coffer of Zeng Hou Yi deco-
rated with images of the Northern Dipper, the Bluegreen Dragon, the White Tiger, and the
twenty-eight lunar lodges, all demonstrating remarkable continuity of cosmological imagery
over a period of many centuries (fig. .).9
The Chu Silk Manuscript, translated by Li Ling in the appendix, provides still more evi-
dence for the importance of spatial
orientation in Chu religion. Both
the layout and the content of the
document make plain that its over-
riding religious concern is with the
interplay of space and time. The
Chu Silk Manuscript anticipates
later ritual and astrological calen-
dars, such as the “Yueling” of the
Lüshi chunqiu, in emphasizing the
importance of performing certain
actions and refraining from others in
each month of the year in order to
ensure safety and good fortune for
the community as a whole. Further
literary evidence for this cosmolog-
• 125 •
ical consciousness is found in the
“Summons of the Soul” and “Great
Summons” poems of the Chuci, in
which the shaman-interlocutor
warns the soul against traveling in
any of the cardinal directions. Still
other literary evidence of Chu cul-
tural origin, although of Han date,
is found in the cosmological chap-
ters of the Huainanzi 10 and in the
almost mandala-like arrangement of
the chapters of the Shanhaijing.11
Also important in emphasizing
the spatial orientation of Chu reli-
gion is the famous funerary banner
from Mawangdui Tomb , the tomb
of the Lady of Dai (fig. .). In this
case the symbolism refers not so
much to the four directions (al-
though directional references are
present in the banner’s iconogra-
phy) as to axial centrality. The ban-
ner reads from bottom to top as a
cosmography, from the watery sub-
terranean world of giant fish, a
great serpent, and a squat-bodied
giant (possibly a personification of
Huntun: primordial undifferentia-
tion or chaos), through the earth-
bound realm of the tomb and the
palaces of the living, to the Changhe
Gate of Heaven (guarded by bird-
bodied immortal officials) giving
entry to the celestial world. Most
scholars accept the suggestion, first
made by Hulsewé, that many picto-
rial and literary documents found
in tombs were intended to act as a
sort of cosmic “road map” for the
Figure 8.2 Drawing of the Mawangdui silk funerary banner,
soul of the deceased.12 That, I
Tomb . Note the depiction of the subcelestial world in the
agree, is true of the Mawangdui shape of a hu vessel, and the apotheosis of Lady Dai at the top
banner, but I would interpret it also center. [Drawing by Sandra Smith-Garcès; see Major , ]
John S. Major
• 126 •
as a device for ensuring the proper cosmological orientation of the tomb (and of the funer-
ary rites associated with it) for the benefit of the deceased.
Finally, as will be emphasized again below, various cosmologically charged objects from the
late Warring States and Han periods are strongly associated with Chu: bronze mirrors with
cosmographical patterns, liubo game boards, and the astronomical/astrological instrument
known as the shi, or cosmograph. Not only the famous mid-Han mirrors with TLV-shaped
decor, but also designs antecedent to them—“mountain” mirrors, eight-tree mirrors, and so
on—were apparently highly prized in Chu and elsewhere in southern China, although it
remains unclear if Chu was also a center for the manufacture of such mirrors. The game of
liubo, however it was played, had strong associations with both spatial orientation and with the
cult of immortals; surviving evidence, including a magnificent liubo set from Mawangdui
Tomb (pl. ), seems to indicate that the game occupied a particularly prominent role in the
south. And while the shi cosmograph cannot be described as exclusively a Chu device, the
majority of cosmographs currently known were found in Chu tombs.13 Moreover, the astro-
nomical chapter of the Huainanzi 14 is to a large extent concerned with principles for the
operation of the cosmograph, providing a further link between that instrument and the liter-
ary heritage of Chu.
This striking Chu emphasis on the religious importance of spatial orientation of course
relates to other features of Chu religion, including both the pantheon and the belief in “far-
flight” spirit journeys undertaken by religious adepts. It also relates to the treatment of the cal-
endar and the calendrical gods, that is, time oriented in space.
• 127 •
Chinese sounding names for the months (Shetige, etc.)
was in widespread use during the Han period.17
Clearly, the months were personified or deified in
Chu religion. That the months were represented on
the Chu Silk Manuscript by monsters with heads that
resemble masks also raises the question of whether the
months were portrayed by actors in masked rituals.
The stone masks from the Matianping burial site were
made for display, not for wearing; yet they may have
had wearable counterparts. Childs-Johnson has studied
masked rituals in the Shang;18 it is interesting to spec-
ulate whether such rituals also were enacted in Chu in
much later times. Figure 8.3 Four of twelve stone masks
One thing that is very interesting about all of these from a W. Han tomb at Matianping,
Hunan, perhaps depicting the gods of
figures is that although some of them seem quite the twelve months [after Hunansheng
frightening looking, none appear to be malevolent; like bowuguan , fig. ]
the ferocious gods of Tibetan Buddhism, these deities
might be dangerous, but their powers can be enlisted, under the right circumstances, to pro-
tect believers from truly malevolent forces in the cosmos. That there were also truly demonic
and harmful figures is known, for example, from the text titled Jie, excavated at Shuihudi,
which refers to many such, including a baleful whirlwind demon.19
In Chu religion as we now know it, the gods are not made in the image of man. Chu
iconography includes a diversity of figures that can be interpreted as spirits or deities, from the
hieratic figures on the coffin of Zeng Hou Yi to the dragon-imps on the coffin of the Lady
of Dai, from the multiheaded, multilimbed peripheral figures of the Chu Silk Manuscript to
the human-animal composites of the Mawangdui Silk Banner; what one does not find are
deities that resemble ordinary, or even idealized, human beings.
A number of recent studies have advanced the identification of the gods of the Chu pan-
theon, working well back into the Warring States period. Such deities as Yan Di, Zhu Rong,
Gou Mang, and Ru Shou, known from the “Heaven Questions” (Tianwen) of the Chuci, the
Mawangdui text Wuxingzhan, and the Huainanzi, have strong ties to Chu religion and roots
that go considerably deeper in time than the Han. Zhu Rong and Yan Di, among others, were
regarded as founding ancestors of the Chu royal clan.20 Yan Di, Zhu Rong, Gong Gong, and
other gods (including some whose names are partly indecipherable) are mentioned in the
“inner short text” section of the Chu Silk Manuscript. A continuing flow of new archaeo-
logical evidence on Chu religion continues to open new avenues of future research in sort-
ing out the Chu pantheon; in particular, new evidence always opens new possibilities of
correlating textual (especially ancient manuscript) and iconographic evidence. We already
know many names of gods and goddesses, but it is not always clear how they relate to each
other and to what extent they are the same as, or correspond to, deities in the north China
tradition. There is a strong likelihood that deities from various ethnic groups (including the
Central States Chinese) were adopted into the evolving religious culture of Chu and that in
John S. Major
• 128 •
turn the “barbarian” deities of Chu were assimilated to the traditional Chinese deities of the
Central States. Such a process is well known, for example, in the assimilation of Babylonian
and, especially, Egyptian deities into Roman religion.
A further important point about the Chu pantheon emerges from the text of the Chu Silk
Manuscript. Modern scholars, relying on late Warring States and Han texts, have reached a
consensus that Chinese cosmogony is unique in having an inception rather than a creation.
Late cosmogonic texts, such as the famous opening passage of the astronomical chapter of the
Huainanzi, do indeed depict a self-organized and self-evolving universe that becomes thus-
of-itself (ziran) through the operations of the Dao, expressed physically through the permu-
tations of qi manifested in yin, yang, and the five phases. But the widely held image of the
Chinese universe as “uncreated” is in need of revision; the gods in the Chu Silk Manuscript
are depicted unambiguously as cosmic creator-ancestors. Thus Han Huang-Lao cosmogony
has its roots in Chu creation mythology dating to at least the fourth century , but along
the way a religious conception of cosmogony was altered to become a more philosophical
and self-contained conception, probably by Zou Yan and his associates in the state of Qi dur-
ing the third century .
• 129 •
pair, in the familiar symbolism of east and west. In Han
art, often very little visual distinction was made be-
tween the tiger as a mythical/directional beast and the
dragon25—in other words, cosmologically the tiger is
in effect a species of dragon. Certainly many dragons,
pre-Han through Tang, are shown with elongated
feline bodies, striding on long legs, while tigers of the
same dates are conspicuously draconic.
Thus for the study of late Chu religion, we are able
to interpret animal iconography on a number of levels.
The correlative symbolism of five-phase theory gives
us, in the first place, the dragon-tiger and bird-snake
Figure 8.4 Drawing of dragon-headed pairs: the dragon as birth/regeneration/wood/spring-
shen spirits handling and preparing to
time, the tiger as death/destructiveness/metal/autumn;
devour snakes from lacquered outer coffin,
Mawangdui Tomb [after Hunansheng the bird of prey as south/potency/fire/heat/active,
bowuguan , ] the snake as north/passivity/water/cold/hibernation.
Beyond that, we read the bird as heaven and snake as
earth or as the subterranean underworld. Further still, the bird is a symbol of ripeness, the
snake a symbol of hibernal quiescence but also of regeneration and rebirth. One of the most
conspicuous attributes of real-life snakes is that they shed their skins, undergoing, in effect, an
auto-rebirth.
Although, as we have just seen, the iconographic meaning of the snake in Chu (and other
Chinese) religious cosmology is by no means entirely negative, it is clear that in China, as
elsewhere, snakes were also regarded as demonic, dangerous, and poisonous. (There is mount-
ing evidence from studies of evolutionary psychology that an aversion to snakes is a hard-
wired, instinctual attribute of the human brain.) Thus an ability to control or manipulate
snakes (or other serpentine creatures, such as dragons) was indicative of special, divinely
bestowed powers. The issue of shamanism in Chu religion will be explored further below;
here it is germane to note that snake handling was a common if not universal feature of north
Asian shamanism: the shaman is invulnerable to the danger of snakes while possessed by his
or her tutelary deity.26 As we will remark upon again below, in works of Chu origin and of
late Warring States/early Han date, such as the Shanhaijing and the Huainanzi, shamans are
described as handling serpents.27
Many of the figures of Warring States and Han Chinese myth (known primarily from
Chu or Chu-influenced sources) are “monstrous” in appearance, often serpent-bodied or
otherwise reptilian. Gong Gong, Zhuan Xu, Gun, and Yü all have serpentine and/or arthro-
pod characteristics. It is especially true that cosmic gods were depicted as demi-serpents:
famous examples include Fuxi and Nügua, the Torch Dragon, the dragons of Thunder Marsh,
and the denizens of the Yellow Emperor’s realm at Chariot Pole Hill.28 At the top center of
the funerary banner from Mawangdui Tomb is a being with a human torso and head and a
serpent tail; the banner from Mawangdui Tomb is different in details from the Tomb ban-
ner, but it does show a male figure in the same position (accompanied by what seems to be a
John S. Major
• 130 •
groom or bodyguard), equipped with a long serpentine tail, ascending to heaven on scaly fish-
bodied steeds. Although various interpretations of these figures have been offered, it seems
to me that the obvious reading is also the best one: these figures are the apotheoses of the
occupants of the tombs, and their serpentine tails are indicative of their transformation into
godlike (or divine ancestor) figures in the celestial realm (pl. ; fig. .).
It is obviously not the case that all Chinese, or all Chu, gods are depicted as being serpent-
tailed; it is, however, true that all beings depicted as having a human head, or human head and
torso, and a snake’s tail are gods. The convention of depicting gods as serpent-tailed goes back
at least to the Shang, and this is one of the many ways in which Chu religion seems to occupy
a special position as the heir of Shang beliefs and practices. The Freer Gallery in Washington,
D.C., has a famous he bronze vessel with a lid sculpted as a realistic human face topped with
bottle-shaped horns; the lid sits atop the vessel so as to link with a serpentine tail that winds
around the body of the vessel itself. Each leg of a guang vessel, also in the Freer collection,
takes the form of a human head (with arms and upper torso) ending in a coiled serpentine
tail.29 I do not suggest that these Shang-era figures should be understood to be the same as
Fuxi, Nügua, or any of the other gods whose names we know from the late Zhou period and
beyond; rather, I point out that the Chu religious iconographers who depicted their celestial
gods as serpent-bodied drew on a tradition already invested with the prestige of many cen-
turies of ancient dynastic practice.
Finally, it is worth noting that while bird, snake, dragon, and tiger images appear on a vari-
ety of objects associated with ritual practices, they seem especially prominent in association
with music—for example, on drum and bell stands (figs. ., .; pl. ). This in turn leads to
further lines of inquiry, too complex to pursue here but too important not to take note of,
into the links in religious cosmology between music, the calendar, and directionality. We
observe also that the large birds incorporated into the decor of drumstands sometimes are
crowned with antlers; this leads us to yet another class of Chu iconographic materials.
Figure 8.5
Lacquer painting
on a wooden
zither of shaman
holding two
dragon-like snakes,
Hubei, Xinyang,
Tomb [after Bei-
jing pl. .]
• 131 •
The Antler-and-Tongue Motif
In chapter So has described the unique tomb guardian figures of Chu as works of religious
art; here we shall try to understand their place in Chu religious belief and practice. The
figures, known still from only a relatively small number of examples, are by no means identi-
cal, but they share some common features: most are vaguely reptilian in aspect and have
prominent insect-like eyes; often but not always they are adorned with antlers. Almost invari-
ably they exhibit a long, pendulous tongue. It is generally agreed that such figures were
included in tombs to function as guardians, to repel evil or demonic forces from invading the
tomb and disturbing its occupant. It is therefore not surprising that the figures should be fero-
cious of mien, but their special features still invite explanation. These apotropaic antler-and-
tongue figures in their concrete manifestations are specific to Chu culture and thus fit into the
Han view of Chu as “barbarian” and “other.” At the same time, they fit into a system of sym-
bolism that is deeply rooted in the human subconscious and that has analogues in other Asian
cultures distributed over a wide area.30
One of the most striking characteristics of the antler-and-tongue motif is its obvious
phallicism. But it is important to note in this regard the distinction between a penis and a
phallus. The two words are often treated as synonyms, but they are not. The penis is a simple
feature of male anatomy; the phallus is a symbolic device, eternally powerful and potent. The
phallus can be a naturalistic depiction of an erect penis, or its symbolism can be displaced onto
other features, such as a protruding tongue, horns, or antlers. Phallic figures themselves can be
depicted as anatomically male, but also as female or androgynous. Symbolically, the point is
not gender but power. In the case of the Chu antler-and-tongue figures, we seem to be deal-
ing with the empowerment of the demonic—but the figures themselves are not baleful, but
rather apotropaic. They are, in short, demons, or gods, harnessed (coerced?) to provide pro-
tection for the master of the tomb.
Examples of such coopted demons are known from other Asian cultures; one thinks, for
example, of the Balinese Rangda (a baby-eating witch whose physical attributes include fangs,
large, bulging eyes, a long, pendulous tongue, and wild hair) who nevertheless, suitably
placated and honored in the Temple of the Dead (and kept under control by the protective,
dragon-like Barong) protects the community from other witches, sorcerers, and the like.
Similar also to the Chu antler-and-tongue figures are the fierce-aspect divinities of Tibetan
Buddhism (and their antecedents in the Bon religion).
Phallic figures also commonly symbolize the idea of potency in connection with fertility.
It is quite conceivable that these figures might have had, in addition to their apotropaic role,
a function in promoting the generative processes of the yang (spring and summer, and phal-
lic) on behalf of the tomb master.
These figures also obviously to some extent represent three-dimensional treatments of the
taotie figure of bronze decor: large, vacuous eyes, horns or antlers, tiny, grasping arms, fiercely
fanged upper jaws. The difference is that they are treated in the round and provided with
lower jaws and lower bodies. But they clearly derive from the same symbolic representational
John S. Major
• 132 •
system; thus we would expect their symbolism to include motifs of axiality and watchfulness
against danger.31
Note that the Xinyang antler-and-tongue tomb guardian figures are depicted as grasping
and gnawing on snakes. The pervasive snake imagery of Chu religious iconography has been
discussed above; here it is enough to note that the gnawing of serpents by the antler-and-
tongue guardian figures is no doubt a symbol of the conquest of death/danger/earthliness
and possibly, by extension, also of the conquest of the ravages of time.
The huge eyes of these figures are possibly intended to represent cicada eyes—the resem-
blance anyway is very striking. The cicada was in China, from very ancient times, a symbol of
rebirth, because of its emergence from the earth and its shedding of the husk-skin of its pupal
stage; this no doubt accounts for the widespread practice in early China of placing a jade
cicada in the mouth of an entombed corpse.32 (Skin shedding and earthliness are thus icono-
graphic features that the cicada shares with the snake). But the huge eyes of the figures also
may appropriately be seen as indicating the vigilance of these figures in guarding their tombs,
rather like the much later Buddhist “all-seeing heavenly king” temple guardian figures.
Finally, the antler motif has obvious links to shamanic practices. In the classic shamanism
of northern Eurasia, the shaman, in preparation for being possessed by his familiar deity,
dresses in an animal skin and an animal mask, often one topped by antlers (even if the skin
and mask are not otherwise cervine).33 This, too, has phallic connotations of the potency of
the shaman in his state of possession; it also directly symbolizes the shaman’s state of spiritual
transformation by linking it with an “animal power.”
Hunting Motifs
Hunting scenes are prominent as part of the decor of Warring States bronze vessels and
other figurative art from Chu—so much so that late Zhou bronzes decorated with hunting
scenes have come to be known as “Huai style” bronzes. Hunting played a large role in royal
and aristocratic life throughout China in the Shang and Zhou periods, but it seems to have
taken on especially deep religious meanings in Chu culture.
Shang oracle bones record numerous instances of royal hunts; Childs-Johnson has pro-
posed that taotie motifs on Shang bronzes represent (severally) the four large hunted beasts that
were the special quarry of the Shang kings and whose flesh was offered ritually to the Shang
ancestors and high gods—the buffalo, deer, wild sheep, and tiger.34 Lewis, in turn, has pointed
out that royal and aristocratic hunts continued in the Zhou period, serving as rallying events
for the Zhou royal house (or the ruling houses of the several states), as occasions for the dis-
play of aristocratic virtues and etiquette, and as substitutes for warfare in carrying out mili-
tary training and maintaining military preparedness.35 The animals killed or captured in the
hunt were also sometimes used as offerings in the royal or aristocratic ancestral temples.
The prominence of hunting scenes in Chu art leaves no doubt of its importance in Chu
culture. It also is safe to assume that hunting in Chu culture represented a continuation, per-
haps with different emphases, of Shang and Zhou practices. The significance of hunting was
• 133 •
Figure 8.6 Hunting scene of an immortal pursuing game (note feathered costume) etched onto a lacquer
box from Mawangdui Tomb [after Fu Juyou and Chen Songchang , ]
certainly also manifold, embracing meanings ranging from transformation magic to aristo-
cratic leisure. We also see differences that may reflect the actual environmental circumstances
of Chu; for example, while Chu hunting scenes often show large mammalian quarry, they are
especially replete with depictions of the shooting of waterfowl.
K. C. Chang has proposed that changes in animal decor on bronzes from the Shang taotie
to the Huai-style hunting scenes represents a change in attitudes in ancient China toward the
natural world in general—a change, in Chang’s view, from an awestruck reverence for the nat-
ural world and the animals that symbolized its spiritual dimension in the Shang to, by the
Warring States period, a secular spirit symbolized by human power over the animal world—
in particular, by human ability to slaughter large numbers of animals in the hunt.36 This
theory does not seem entirely satisfactory, however, both because large-scale royal hunting was
as characteristic of Shang as of Zhou times, and because even the largest and bloodiest hunts
of late Zhou times were more than merely occasions for the slaughter of beasts.
First, it is important to emphasize that large-scale hunting was an aristocratic privilege. We
have seen (Cook, chapter ) how the royal family of Chu and their aristocratic supporters
were scrupulously orthodox in their performance of temple rites. It seems not unlikely that
a fondness in Chu for ritual bronzes decorated with hunting scenes might betray a slightly
defensive assertion of aristocratic status and mores on the part of the upper classes of that
powerful but peripheral state. Cartmill has shown37 that in medieval Europe, just at a time
when the military prowess of the aristocracy was being challenged by new infantry tactics and
weapons, hunting became the aristocratic activity par excellence; there grew up under those
circumstances an elaborate etiquette of the hunt, a precise and abstruse language of venery,
and an ascription of high prestige to stags, boars, and other objects of the chase.
Hunting as an element in aristocratic self-definition almost certainly was characteristic of
Chu culture, as it was of early Chinese civilization in general. At least, the prestige of hunt-
ing in ancient China is not at issue; bronze vessels themselves were high-prestige goods, and
if they were decorated with hunting scenes, the hunt must have shared in that atmosphere of
prestige. More precisely, there is evidence that in Chu the deities of the suprahuman world,
and perhaps also the souls of deceased ancestors, were believed to enjoy hunting. This is again
John S. Major
• 134 •
implicit in the decor of ritual bronzes; the liturgical and sacrificial aspects of rituals employ-
ing bronzes were addressed to gods and ancestors, but so, too, was the very decor of the
bronzes themselves. Even more to the point, the dragon shen figures on the black lacquer
coffin from Mawangdui Tomb are portrayed as being engaged in hunting amid cloud-
foliage decor that seems to suggest the celestial realm. The clear implication is that the
occupant of the coffin is herself to be thought of as having departed to an otherworldly realm
of aristocratic ease and privilege.
Hunting was not merely an occasion for pleasurable, strenuous exercise or participation in
a controlled simulacrum of warfare; it was also an occasion for killing or capturing animals
under circumstances that carried sacrificial connotations. We have seen that in the Shang, the
use of animal masks and taotie designs on bronzes implies that animals (or at least some
animals) were embodiments of divine spirits; this point has been explored in depth by Childs-
Johnson. The same inference may be made on the basis of the metamorphic and composite
imagery associated with the gods of Chu. As Campbell has pointed out, if animals are
regarded as the embodiment of deities, one way of worshiping those deities is to sacrifice the
animals and ritually offer their flesh to the gods.38 Evidence from the Spring and Autumn
period suggests that the link between hunting and sacrifice was a solemn obligation. As a
remonstrating nobleman said to the Duke of Lu,“The lord does not shoot any bird or beast
whose flesh is not offered in the sacrificial pots or whose hide, teeth, bones, horns, fur, or
feathers are not used on the sacrificial vessels.”39
In Warring States China, again emphatically in Chu, humans were deeply involved in the
world of animals through rituals of exorcism and sacrifice. One important source of evidence
for this is the “Monthly Ordinances” (Yueling) section of the Lüshi chunqiu, a text that is
northern in origin but later became particularly associated with the Huang-Lao school (which
in the Han was centered in Qi and Chu). In that text it is specified that game captured by the
ruler in a ritualized hunt was a required part of the sacrificial offerings made at the suburban
temples (the ancestral altars outside the cardinal direction gates of the capital) at each turn of
the season throughout the year. In particular there appeared to be, in this religious cosmol-
ogy, a royal obligation to procure mammalian game as summer turned into autumn, and fish
as autumn turned into winter, to “lead in the qi of the season.”40 The widespread use of hunt-
ing motifs on Chu ritual bronzes may therefore also refer to the ruler’s role as a “cosmic assis-
tant,” or facilitator, in bringing about the smooth and orderly succession of seasons in the
annual cosmic round. And this of course returns to the point made earlier in this chapter
about the importance of seasonal and directional orientation in Chu religious consciousness.
• 135 •
word in connection with China at all. On the other extreme are scholars who see all ancient
Chinese religion as essentially shamanistic. In a recent volume surveying the culture of
ancient China,41 K. C. Chang, for example, identifies the Neolithic grave at Xishuipo, men-
tioned above, flanked by a shell-mosaic dragon and tiger, as the “tomb of a shaman”; other
contributors to the volume similarly use the term “shamanism” broadly in describing ancient
Chinese religion.42 While not subscribing to this broad view of ancient Chinese religion as
shamanistic, I would argue that shamanism was a key part of early Chinese religion and espe-
cially of the religious culture of Chu.
In taking up the issue of shamanism, it is necessary in the first place to be clear what one
is talking about. Hultkrantz has offered a definition that will form the basis for further dis-
cussion of shamanism in this chapter: a shaman is “a social functionary who, with the help of
guardian spirits, attains ecstasy to create a rapport with the supernatural world on behalf of his
group members.”43 This definition, without being overly restrictive, imposes two very impor-
tant requirements: that the shaman personally have familiar guardian spirits, and that he (or
she) must contact the spirit world in a state of ecstatic transport. In view of these require-
ments, I am not sure that the evidence currently available permits us to regard most ancient
Chinese royal and aristocratic sacrificial rituals as shamanistic.44
On the other hand, the evidence for a shamanistic component of Chu religion is strong
and diverse enough to be quite persuasive. The “Li sao,” the “Nine Songs,” and similar poems
of the Chuci have long been seen by scholars as literary treatments of genuine experiences of
shamanistic spirit possession, and arguments against that view have not been convincing.45
These poems follow a fairly stereotypical pattern: a shaman, often employing erotic imagery,
invites a god or goddess to take possession of her or his body; the ecstatic union, if success-
ful, nevertheless comes to an end, leaving the shaman sad and bereft. These poems meet our
test of shamanism proper: the deity invoked is specifically named, and the sexual imagery gives
evidence of ecstatic union.
It might also be possible to argue that if the Chuci poems give evidence of shamanism, it
is not necessarily the case that such shamanism was particularly a Chu phenomenon. But one
making that argument would then have to explain how and why the Chuci poems were seen
as such powerful items of Chu exotica in the Han period. And one might ask, too, why sim-
ilar evidence for shamanistic practices is so lacking from the Central States.
The literary evidence for Chu shamanism is bolstered by other evidence that, although
somewhat fragmentary and impressionistic, cumulatively is sufficient to carry some weight.
One must consider, for example, the prevalence in Chu iconography of such images as snakes
and human-animal composite figures, all of which have known shamanistic connotations in
the religious cultures of Siberia and Northeast Asia. Closely related to this is the phenome-
non of snake handling; in a typical passage, one of the most famous shamans of ancient
China, the probably mythical Shaman Xian (Wu Xian), is described in Shanhaijing :
Shaman Xian is north of Woman Chou Mountain. In his right hand he grasps
a bluegreen snake, in his left hand he grasps a vermilion snake. He dwells on
Dengbao Mountain, where the assembled shamans ascend and descend.
John S. Major
• 136 •
Another passage, from Shanhaijing , combines the motifs of snake regalia, shamanistic ascent
to heaven, and ritual music:
Beyond the Southwestern Sea, south of the Vermilion River and west of the
Flowing Sands, there is a person who wears bluegreen snakes as ear ornaments
and rides two dragons. His name is Hou Kai of Xia. He presented three slave
women to Heaven, after which he received the nine bian songs and the nine ge
songs and descended again.
• 137 •
might have had links with the South Siberian corridor to West Asia and Europe, via, for
example, the Indo-European Tocharian culture of ancient Xinjiang, and the Andronovo cul-
ture further to the north.50 These links, which seemed rather speculative at the time, are now
being substantiated at least in part through the work of Mair and his colleagues.51
The subject of ecstatic experience in Chu religious culture leads to still another area of
inquiry. Shamanism as such was at least to some extent (in ways that are not yet fully under-
stood) a formal and recognized part of Chu religion. But as Paper has pointed out in his rich
and provocative new comparative study of Chinese religions, in Chu culture, along with
shamanism there very likely existed religious practices—perhaps outside the structure of
officially sanctioned rites—characterized by a more promiscuous spirit possession.52 This was
what Paper terms mediumism, in which participants in religious rituals go into trances and are
possessed by spirits, speak in tongues, prophesy on behalf of the community, dance with wild,
unbound hair, and otherwise engage in “lewd” conduct. (A crucial difference between this
type of spirit possession and shamanism is that a medium—who might be any participant in
an ecstatic ritual—does not necessarily have any formal training or lineage sanction to act as
a conduit for the divine, and his or her possession is not by a particular, familiar, known, and
named tutelary spirit.) Mediumism has been a part of Chinese folk religion for centuries (and
remains so today), despite the frequent disapproval of formal religious authorities and overt
hostility on the part of government. It is likely that what struck social authorities as the out-
of-control excesses of mediumism were involved in the “lewd rites” (yinsi) of Chu so disap-
proved of by Chinese commentators to the north.53
If shamanism proper suggests ancient links between Chu and the north, mediumism
betokens cultural attributes in common with the south, including the peninsular and island
worlds of Southeast Asia. Mediumism is pervasive in the Malay world, for example. Thus it
is significant that linguistic evidence suggests that the now very widespread and diverse
Malayo-Austronesian peoples may have originated in the coastal regions of south China
around present-day Fujian54—or, in other words, in ancient Yue, hard by the southern fron-
tier of Chu. Ritual and iconographic links between ancient south China and the Malay lands
of the South Seas have been explored by a number of scholars.55 Reinforcing these simi-
larities is concrete evidence of long-distance trade between Chu and places to the south,
including a trade in sacred objects. Chu had known trade links with the Red River valley of
Vietnam (see Peters, chapter ), which in turn was in trade contact with the East Indies.
Many temples throughout the Lesser Sunda Islands preserve Warring States or Han-era
Dongson-type bronze drums; the “Moon of Pejeng” in a temple in central Bali is only the
most famous of many such sacred objects.
We have already noted above, in connection with antler-and-tongue fierce protective
deities, the additional possibility of ritual and iconographic ties between Chu religion and
proto-Tibetan religions via the Shu and Ba cultures of Sichuan.
Both more evidence and additional research are still needed to sort out the complexities
of Chu religion. But for the present it seems fair to reiterate that, as I proposed some years
ago, Chu religion is of particular interest because Chu itself was ethnically diverse and
John S. Major
• 138 •
because its culture was enriched by contacts and commonalities with other, sometimes far-
flung, cultures of East Asia. Chu occupied a very special position as a crossroads of cultures
in ancient East Asia.
• 139 •
Huang-lao Daoism and Chu Influence on Han Culture
By the end of the second century there existed a definite and growing fad for Chu cul-
ture in fashionable Han social and intellectual circles. Of course, Liu Bang, the founder of the
Han dynasty, himself was a “man of Chu.” A southern flavor was evident at the Han court
from the very beginning, in everything from clothing styles and lacquerware to poetry, not
excluding an influx of would-be courtiers and advisors from the south. The trend accelerated
during the time of Emperor Wu. (For an elaboration of these points see Sukhu, chapter .)
Under Emperor Wu, enthusiasm in Chang’an for things southern included an interest in
the late Chu regional intellectual tradition. That tradition contributed importantly to the
ideas of the current of thought (whether a closely organized “school” of thought or a looser
intellectual trend is a matter of debate) called Huang-Lao, which in turn was closely linked
to self-cultivation and the origins of early Daoism.59 Textual and iconographic evidence sup-
ports the idea that Huang-Lao was strongly linked to a regional—southeastern (i.e.,“Chu”)
—intellectual tradition, a tradition that also had roots in the third-century Jixia Academy
of the state of Qi (a close neighbor to the northeast of Chu’s easternmost territories).
What do I mean by Huang-Lao? I have described elsewhere what I take to be the essen-
tial philosophical stance of Huang-Lao.60 Here I would emphasize that Huang-Lao thought
takes Dao as the highest expression of universal order and considers the natural order to have
normative priority over the human order. The ruler thus must make his actions conform to
the natural order, both by means of inner self-cultivation and outer acquisition of knowledge
about the phenomenal world. The king must not act “contrary to nature”; rather, the proper
stance of the king is wuwei, “non-striving” or “taking no action contrary to nature.” It is
worth emphasizing, too, that the Huang-Lao ruler was no passive slave of natural forces, but
rather was so empowered by them as to be virtually invulnerable on his throne.
Huang-Lao thought underwent vigorous development at the court of Huainan during
the reign of Liu An (r. – ); this in turn suggests a specific mechanism for the rapid
proliferation of Huang-Lao ideas at the Han imperial court in the late second century
and into the following century.
There was first of all, of course, a natural spread of ideas through intellectual contacts, the
wanderings of scholars, and the exchange of written materials. (As Sukhu points out in chap-
ter , Liu An himself wrote a commentary on the “Li sao.”) The capacity for the dissemina-
tion of materials is conspicuous in the similarities between the Mawangdui corpus, from the
kingdom of Changsha, and the Huainanzi, from the kingdom of Huainan. The Huang-Lao
movement, if on can call it that, was vigorous and intellectually powerful; its ideas would have
spread comparatively rapidly. But a single event may also have had considerable impact: the
confiscation of the library of Liu An in , after he committed suicide rather than face
trial and execution for alleged crimes against the imperial throne.
We have a good standard of comparison, in the funerary goods from Mawangdui, to give
us a hint of what Liu An’s palace and academy buildings might have contained. The Mawang-
dui funerary library surely represented only a portion, and probably a minor portion, of the
royal library at Changsha; the library at Huainan, a famous center of learning, must have been
John S. Major
• 140 •
even larger and included versions
of most if not all of the same texts.
Imagine, then, the bundles of slips
and rolls of silk that passed into the
imperial collection. We can readily
imagine, also, that the haul included
liubo sets, bronze mirrors decorated
with the “four mountains” pattern
and other cosmographical symbols,
shi cosmographs, xingpan lunar
lodge dials, gnomons and shadow
scales, and other scientific instru-
ments (pl. ). The arrival of all of
this material in Chang’an (proba-
bly with at least some academi-
cians, astrologers, and technicians in
tow) must surely have had a dra-
matic impact. These materials from Figure 8.7 Chart showing the nine palaces of heaven and the
twenty-eight lunar lodges, from a silk text called the “Yin-yang
Huainan must have sharply ad- wuxing,” Mawangdui Tomb [after Fu Juyou and Chen
vanced Huang-Lao theories at the Songchang , ]
Han imperial court at a time when
those theories were not yet completely understood nor decisively influential in northern
China. They certainly provided additional materials for Dong Zhongshu as he worked on his
great philosophical synthesis during the decades immediately following Liu An’s death (and
note, in that synthesis, the blending of Yijing materials into Huang-Lao cosmology).
• 141 •
connection between the Huainanzi chapter and the rhymed “Heaven Questions” in the
Chuci.63
Use of the cosmograph represented a new cosmological metaphor, one that replaced the
old gaitian theory of cosmology. The original gaitian metaphor for the cosmos held that round
heaven covered the square earth as a round chariot canopy covered the square passenger
compartment.64 But with the cos-
mograph, in order for the device to
work at all the round heaven had to
be smaller than the square earth.
The absurdities that followed from
making a physical model of the
gaitian universe in this form—there
would be no place to put the eight
pillars that separated heaven and
earth, and, as Wang Chong would
later complain, the corners did not
fit—hastened its abandonment in
favor of the huntian theory.65
A second specific influence of
the Chu legacy, as exemplified by
cosmological works such as the
Huainanzi “Treatise on the Patterns
of Heaven,” is, I would suggest, the
“Grand Inception” calendar reform
of .66 This event has been
studied at length by a number of
scholars, who have pointed out
among other things the political
Figure 8.8 Antler-and-tongue figure of a shaman [courtesy of benefits for the Han of abandoning
the British Museum] the Qin calendar and promulgating
their own. I would point out, in
addition, that all of the astrological literature associated with the cosmograph was keyed, in the
Chu tradition, to the so-called Xia calendar, in which the first civil month began in yin, the
second month after the winter solstice.67 The widespread use of the cosmograph, and cre-
dence in the astrology associated with it, would have been a powerful incentive to the calen-
dar reform that was in fact carried out only fifteen years after Liu An’s death.
A third specific piece of the Chu legacy, I believe, is the TLV mirror. The (disputed) ear-
liest specimens of these mirrors do not predate ; their main vogue as a cult item came
late in the first century and extended through the time of Wang Mang and into the East-
ern Han.68 Physically, the TLV pattern descends from the liubo game board, the earth plate of
the cosmograph, and from certain precursor cosmological mirror patterns, such as the “four
mountains” design. Conceptually, the TLV mirror is Chu and Huang-Lao in every respect and
John S. Major
• 142 •
has its intellectual roots in the second century . The Huang-Lao obsession with cosmic
order is made manifest in these mirrors, magical objects that enabled their possessors to ori-
ent themselves in terms of the axis mundi, the eight mountains that formed the pillars of the
universe, the multiple ninefold continents and provinces of the square earth, and the deities
of the four directions. That this kind of schematic cosmography had achieved national signi-
ficance can be seen in the institution of national sacrifices to the gods of the center and the
four directions during the first century .
Finally, I would suggest that the cult of Xiwangmu, Queen Mother of the West, which
reached near-hysterical proportions at the end of the first century and then settled down
into religious respectability during the Eastern Han, is a clear example of Chu influence on
China as a whole.69 The earliest literary references to Xiwangmu occur in texts that may be
identified as southern and Huang-Lao. Her manifestation as it is described in these texts may
represent a long evolution from diverse sources, reflecting the ethnic diversity of Chu itself.
The fierce-but-protective mien of Chu deity images in general may point to a common
origin in early proto-Tibetan religious culture; Fracasso sees Tibetan influence on the early,
ferocious image of Xiwangmu in particular.70 In other respects Xiwangmu and her eastern
counterpart, Dongwanggong, may descend from deities that, by the Warring States period at
least, were accepted by the Chu royal house as representing the founding deities of their
state.71 Xiwangmu was often depicted in bronze on TLV mirrors; in the Eastern Han she
became a favorite motif for tomb relief sculptures from Sichuan to Shandong. By post-Han
times the tiger-fanged, whistling, terrifying goddess of the West had metamorphosed almost
entirely into a beautiful, benevolent, wise, and immortal Daoist goddess, the mythical para-
mour of Emperor Wu of the Han.72
That elements of Chu religion and intellectual culture contributed so greatly to the larger
culture of Han China is hardly surprising, given, as Sukhu shows in the following chapter, the
hold that Chu achieved on the Han imagination.
• 143 •
9
Monkeys, Shamans,
Emperors, and Poets
The Chuci and Images of Chu during the Han Dynasty
Gopal Sukhu
• 145 •
erent is the life of Qu Yuan. That life, according to the only biography—in the Shiji (Histor-
ical Records) of Sima Qian—is the classic story of the loyal minister rejected, banished, and
driven to suicide by a benighted sovereign in the thrall of corrupt, sycophantic courtiers.
Many centuries passed before scholars began to notice that Wang Yi’s allegoresis made little
sense of the poems.
By the end of the imperial age the subcommentaries to Wang Yi’s annotations pullulated
with the Chinese words for “strained,” “arbitrary,” and “mistaken,” leaving later readers with
the impression that Wang Yi was simply a defective commentator, although, for the more ob-
scure passages, a necessary one. As Hawkes put it,“[T]he Later Han was an age of great scholars
and exegetes, but Wang Yi was emphatically not of their number.”3 But Wang Yi did not in-
vent the Qu Yuan myth, nor was his mode of exegesis extraordinary for his time. And while
I would not contradict Hawkes about Wang Yi, I do not believe that it was primarily intel-
lectual deficiency that misguided the writing brush of the imperial librarian. It was, rather, the
hermeneutic culture the politics of the time engendered—specifically the politics of creat-
ing the images that would determine how the ancient state of Chu would be remembered.
Kao-tzu [Gaozu, or Liu Bang] . . . started back to the capital, passing through his
old home of P’ei [Pei] on his way. Here he stopped and held a feast at the Palace
of P’ei, summoning all his old friends and the elders and young men to drink to
their hearts’ content. He gathered together a group of some hundred and twenty
children of P’ei and taught them to sing and, when the feast was at its height,
Kao-tzu struck the lute and sang a song which he had composed:“A great wind
came forth;/The clouds rose on high./Now that my might rules all within the
seas,/I have returned to my old village./Where shall I find brave men/To guard
the four corners of the world?” He made the children join in and repeat the
song, while he rose and danced. Deeply moved with grief and nostalgia, and
Gopal Sukhu
• 146 •
with tears streaming down his face, he said to the elders of P’ei, “The traveler
sighs for his old home.” 5
Liu Bang’s song is in one of the Chu modes. Pei was where he had been a village head under
Qin rule. Liu Bang had been born and raised a commoner. Chu had not been his domain but
his home. It was a Chu aristocrat, Xiang Yu, his eventual enemy, who had given him the title
of prince of Han. He had to defeat this symbol of noble Chu to become emperor of the Han
dynasty. In the passage we see Chu becoming for Liu Bang a state of nostalgia—a nostalgia
that would overcome him and other members of the Han imperial household at various times
throughout the first century or so of Han rule.
There was the time, for instance, when Liu Bang the emperor decided that he would
replace the heir apparent, the son of Empress Lu, with the son of Lady Qi, one of his favorite
concubines. The empress, upon learning this, sought the aid of the most perspicacious man
at court, who advised her to attempt to win the support of four wise old men whom the
emperor admired, but who refused to enter imperial service because they detested his boor-
ishness. The empress followed the advice and brought the old men to court, where, at a palace
banquet, they made clear their intention of lending their stature to the cause of the heir
apparent. The emperor, swayed by this, abandoned his plan, whereupon
The four men wished the emperor long life, and when they had finished that,
they hastened to retire. The emperor watched them as they left. He summoned
Lady Qi to come near and pointed the four men out to her, saying, “I want to
replace the heir apparent, but with those four men upholding him, his wings are
now full-grown and we would be hard put to hinder his rise. Empress Lu is now
your true master.” Lady Qi wept. The emperor said,“Dance a Chu dance for me,
and I will sing a Chu song for you.” And he sang,“The great swan flies high/and
once he rises he goes a thousand miles/His pinions set/he crosses beyond the
four seas/Even if I had an arrow for shooting high/where could I aim it?” He
sang this several times as Lady Qi choked on sobs. The emperor rose to leave.
The banquet was over.6
In this moment of crisis, it is the memory of a real Chu, brought back in song and dance, that
consoles. Before he became emperor of all China, the ways of Chu were the only ones Liu
Bang cared to know. An incident from that time illustrates this point and foreshadows cultural
and political conflicts that would later develop at the Han court:
Shusun Tong wore Confucian robes. The prince of Han [Liu Bang] detested
them, so Tong changed them and wore the short tunic, in the style of Chu. The
prince of Han was pleased.7
Shusun Tong was a Confucian from Qin who became one of Liu Bang’s most trusted advi-
sors. How much of a concession his change of clothes was may be surmised from another
• 147 •
story from the Shiji where Xiang Yu, having sacked the Qin capital of Xianyang in the north,
is advised to establish his capital there. But Xiang Yu thought it a better idea to return to Chu
and establish his capital there. “To become rich and famous and then not go back to your old
home is like putting on an embroidered coat and going out walking in the night. Who is to
know about it?”8 The man who attempted to convince Xiang Yu to stay in the north later
remarked to someone else, “People say that the men of Chu are nothing but monkeys with
hats on, and now I know what they mean!” To reject the civilized north for the barbaric south
seemed unthinkable, and only a barely human southerner would consider it. So when Shusun
Tong changed from the scholarly robes of the north to the short tunic of the south, he was
making a concession to barbarism, but a barbarism that was on the rise, that he thought he
could curb and eventually refine to his own benefit once it reached the north. So his con-
cession was strategic and temporary.
The barbarism was not merely that of Chu. An aristocrat would surely have tolerated the
Confucian robes. Rather, the barbarism was that of the lower-class men of Chu and various
other states that had joined Liu Bang’s army, hardly more than a rabble. Once they were in the
capital, and Liu Bang was declared emperor,
the emperor did away with the excessive protocol and laws of the Qin, select-
ing from them and simplifying them. His crowd of vassals, meanwhile, drank
liquor and fought over who merited what. When they got drunk they shouted
wildly, drew their swords, and struck the wooden pillars of the palace. The sov-
ereign found this distressing. Shusun Tong, knowing that the emperor was grow-
ing increasingly disgusted at this, said to him,“Now a Confucian is not good at
helping one in aggression and conquest, but can help with maintenance and
development. I would like to call various scholars from the state of Lu to court
and they, together with my disciples, will set up court protocol.” 9
When audience with the emperor was performed according to the Confucian protocol of
Shusun Tong and his cohorts for the first time, the emperor declared,“Today, finally, I know
the nobility of being an emperor.”10
Court ritual was now Confucianized, but the imperial family was not. What Shusun Tong
had effected was an aristocratic veneer for the upstart emperor. The northern Confucians saw
through it all too easily. Of the Confucian scholars who were invited to court from the state
of Lu (Confucius’ state) to partake in the formulation of Han court ritual, two declined,
protesting that “a reason for setting up ritual and music occurs only after an aristocratic family
has had a hundred years’ accumulation of moral power; then and only then can ritual and
music be established for it.”11 The “accumulation of moral power” would eventually be pro-
duced artificially by historians who spuriously traced the emperor’s family to the legendary
Emperor Yao.12 Such a pedigree made the Liu family both aristocratic and originally
northern.
Had Liu Bang been an aristocrat, he could simply have continued the court protocol of
Chu—that is, continued what he was used to. Liu Bang was distant enough from the aristoc-
Gopal Sukhu
• 148 •
racy to find the ritual that prevailed among them baffling, and when Shusun Tong suggested
fashioning a peculiarly Han court ritual, Liu Bang’s first request was, “Can you manage to
make it not difficult?”13 Shusun Tong managed just that, but it was still necessary for all of the
courtiers to practice it in preparation for the ritual audience with the emperor in the tenth
month, to mark the seventh year from the founding of the dynasty. The question in court
matters, then, was not whether or not to adopt Chu court protocol. (Even if Chu court pro-
tocol had been adopted, that protocol itself had been derived from northern models, since the
ritual experts who were most in demand in all of the states were Confucian, i.e., heirs to the
only models of court ritual, the Zhou forms of the north [see Cook, chapter ].) The ques-
tion was how to teach ritual to uncultivated commoners.
There were, however, rituals a Chu commoner would well have been familiar with: reli-
gious, especially shamanistic, rituals. This would have been true for most commoners in the
Central States at the time. Chu, being on the periphery, preserved older (and indigenous) cus-
toms, and the difference between it and the other states was probably only one of degree. By
the late Warring States period, however, Chu was one of the states singled out as a place
where belief in shamans and ghosts was common. A text compiled under the kingdom of
Qin (ca. ) titled Lüshi chunqiu (The Springs and Autumns of Mr Lü), for instance,
states, “The people of Jing (Chu) fear ghosts but the people of Yue seek blessings from
them.” 14 By the Han period the Chu preoccupation with shamans and spirits became a
stereotype, as in this famous and unflattering picture of the Chu people from the Han Shu
(History of the Former Han Dynasty):
Watered by the Yangtze and the Han, Chu is a land of lakes and rivers, of well-
forested mountains and of the wide lowlands of Jiangnan, where burning and
flooding make the labors of ploughing and hoeing superfluous. The people live
on fish and rice. Hunting, fishing and wood-gathering are their principal activ-
ities. Because there is always enough to eat, they are a lazy and improvident folk,
laying up no stores for the future, so confident are they that the supply of food
and drink will always be replenished. They have no fear of cold and hunger; on
the other hand, there are no rich households among them. They believe in the
power of shamans and spirits and are much addicted to lewd religious rites.15
The stereotype of the Chu people as shaman-thralled does not occur in any text earlier than
Lüshi chunqiu, as far as I know. This makes sense since shamanism and various other forms of
occultism were rife, and therefore nothing special, throughout the Central States, as was the
case in most places in the world at the time. The characterization of Chu as barbaric or semi-
barbaric, however, does occur earlier, and seen from the northern heartland, late-developing
Chu appeared uncivilized. In general, Confucians and those under their influence were of
course against shamanism. Mr Lü, or whoever wrote the Lüshi chunqiu, may well have been
under the influence of the Confucians. It is odd that a criticism of occult practices should
occur in his book since it was compiled under the rule of the first Qin emperor, who was
notorious for his interest in the occult. For a Confucian living under Qin rule, the nearest tar-
• 149 •
get would have been the cruel emperor. Perhaps the writer was practicing the very Confu-
cian art of hitting the nearest target by aiming at the one farthest away. Barbarous Chu no
doubt served this purpose well. Chu also was put to this and other purposes during the Han.
According to the Shiji, the religious orientation of the Han imperial court was little dif-
ferent from that of the Qin. It was the wish of the Han founder, Liu Bang, that it should be
this way. This commoner, who simplified the court ritual of Qin for use in the Han, was
instinctively drawn to the elaborate religious ritual of Qin, which he largely preserved. In an
unambiguous edict he said,“We consider sacrifice important and we honor worship. Under
our rule the worship of the Lord on High and the sacrifices to the divinities of mountains
and rivers that should receive sacrifice will be performed each according to its proper season
as before.”16
But what were the worship and sacrifices of Qin? The Shiji tells us,“When the Qin uni-
fied the world, [the emperor] ordered that the spirits of heaven and earth, of the famous
mountains, and of the great rivers that had been customarily worshipped by the officials in
charge of sacrifice be put in order, where possible.” This “putting in order” of the spirits was
of course the regularization of the sacrifices, according to time and liturgical mode. The
officials in charge of sacrifice were not only the officials of the preunification State of Qin,
they were the officials of all states now under Qin sway. The Shiji catalog of Qin dynasty sac-
rifices mentions deities of mountains, rivers, and other sites from every quarter of the empire.
In addition, various heavenly bodies, the lords of heaven, obscure spirits such as the Chenbao
(who were shaped like pheasants and emitted an intense light), and famous personages such
as the Zhou kings and certain valorous generals were worshiped. Only a few of the sacrifices
were of contemporary origin. The sacred legacy that Qin yielded to Han comprised many of
China’s most archaic religious practices.17
Liu Bang continued most of these practices and added to them, and he did not disappoint
those who believed the stereotypes about the Chu predilection for shamanism. By his order
the capital at Chang’an became a nexus of shamanic cults from all over China:
Gopal Sukhu
• 150 •
The Lord Amidst Clouds, the Controller of Lives, and the Yellow River are divinities also
worshiped in the famous “Nine Songs” from the Chuci. It seems very likely that these Chuci
songs, if they were known at the time, would have been used as hymns. The hymns recorded
in the Shiji and the Han Shu as Han hymns are very similar to the Chu songs. (I have used the
terms “song” and “hymn” here out of Sinological habit, but in fact they both translate the
same Chinese word, ge.) The hymn to the Bedroom Divinity, known later as the Bedroom
Divinity Who Brings Security to the Generation(s) (Anshi Fangzhong), a hymn to be per-
formed by women to the accompaniment of strings (rather than bells and chimestones), was
composed in the Chu mode, also by order of Liu Bang (as Emperor Gaozu).
During the first half century or so of Han rule, Chu culture was still a distinct entity in
the Han imagination. It had spread through conquest to the center of a China finally unified
under tolerable rule and was regenerating itself through those who still had memory of Chu
as a political entity. But the peculiarly Chu aristocratic identity had been swept from the pri-
mary seats of sovereignty, first by Qin and again by a Chu commoner. And while Liu Bang
and his cohorts held to their version of a Chu identity, the only definition of aristocracy avail-
able to them now was a northern one.
• 151 •
tacked on at the end. Yang Xiong would eventually turn away from the form, repudiating it
with a term that later would be used by Ban Gu and others to characterize religious rites in
Chu: yin, or “excessive.” The Chinese word yin may also be translated as “lewd” or “lascivi-
ous.” The use of the term by Yang Xiong was a harbinger of the rejection of Chu as a major
source of culture for the Han imperial court.
Gopal Sukhu
• 152 •
Qin dynasty and their religion on the eclectic, and sometimes shamanistic, cults supported by
that regime.
The Reformists objected to the hymn on the grounds that “it had been composed and it
had been performed in a religious context with the intention of commemorating the spectac-
ular achievement of a reigning emperor.”24 The criticism, by a superintendent of the capital
named Ji Yan, is recorded in the Treatise of Music in the Shiji:
The kings of old composed hymns for the purpose of transmitting the charisma
of the ancestors and transforming through education the myriad subjects. In the
present case,Your Majesty has obtained horses and has composed poetry to sing
of them, and the song is incorporated into the rites in the ancestral temple. Is it
possible that the departed kings or the people will appreciate this music? 25
I suspect that what particularly irked Ji Yan was the statement in the hymn: “The Grand
Unity offers tribute.” The phrase implies Emperor Wu’s sovereignty over the divinity, a species
of hubris especially abhorrent to the Confucian Reformist heart, since it assumes a personal
relationship with a patron divinity. The passage later in the hymn wherein Emperor Wu
demands that the heavenly horses take him to the gates of heaven only twists the knife in the
wound.
This critic was unusually direct—so direct that one of Emperor Wu’s other officials
recommended that he and his whole family be exterminated as punishment. To avoid such
dangers most critics framed their objections in indirect ways. A good example of this is Sima
Qian’s response to Emperor Wu’s decision to institute the feng and shan sacrifices, which, far
from transmitting ancestral charisma or transforming the masses, were performed in the
strictest secrecy as a means to reach all of the powers of the cosmos. Emperor Wu, seeking to
know how such sacrifices were to be properly conducted, questioned the most learned per-
sonages of his court. Most of his advisors shrugged their shoulders. Others offered conflict-
ing accounts.
Sima Qian, however, responded that indeed the feng and shan sacrifices had been carried
out in ancient times, and their performance sends pure offerings to all the countless spirits.
Only the most virtuous rulers, however, and particularly those who had personally witnessed
signs of heaven’s approval, had presumed to undertake such hallowed and powerful rites. And
since the rites had not been performed for some time, their proper form was now beyond
recovery.
Whether the emperor felt the jab or not is hard to tell. He did, however, eventually per-
form rites he had been given to believe were the feng and shan sacrifices. Such information as
he was able to obtain about them seems not to have come from his erudite advisors at court,
but from itinerant shaman/magicians such as one Li Shaojun.
Li Shaojun was a man of obscure origins who claimed advanced age but minimal aging
and deep knowledge of the occult. According to him, the feng and shan sacrifices were an
important step on the road to immortality. As he instructed Emperor Wu:
• 153 •
If one sacrifices to the stove, it will deliver a certain object. Once it delivers the
object, cinnabar can be transformed into gold. Once the gold has formed, if one
fashions eating utensils of it, their use will augment one’s lifespan. Once one’s
lifespan is augmented, that [the method of the feng shan] of the immortal deni-
zens of the mysterious island of Penglai can be seen. Having seen that, if one
performs the feng and shan sacrifices in that way, then one will never die. This is
what Huang Di [the Yellow Lord] did.
After hearing such things as this from the lips of Li Shaojun, Emperor Wu began sending
expeditions out to sea in search of the island of Penglai. He also began attempting to convert
cinnabar and other substances into gold.26 In he reinstituted (or rather, reinvented) the
feng and shan sacrifices.
Ritual arises from humankind. People have desires. If one desires but does not
obtain what one desires, then one cannot but feel resentment. If one’s feeling
resentment is without measure then one wrangles. If there is wrangling then
there is disorder. The former kings detested this disorder; therefore, they insti-
tuted ritual and appropriateness to cultivate human desire, to fulfill human de-
mands; that desire not be exhausted by objects, and that objects not be made to
submit to [every] desire. That the two grow in mutual adaptation, that is why rit-
ual arose. Therefore, what is known as ritual is nourishing/cultivating. It is with
the grains and the five tastes that one cultivates the mouth. It is with pepper,
thoroughwort, and perfumed roots that one cultivates the nose. It is with bells,
drums, pipes, and strings that one cultivates the ear. It is with carving, openwork,
and designs that one cultivates the eye, . . . Therefore, ritual is a cultivating.27
The word that I translate as “cultivate” also means to nourish or to feed. In this sense a
more restricted and primitive notion of ritual resides, that is, blood sacrifice. This under-
standing of ritual was widespread even in Sima Qian’s time. No one had thoroughly repudi-
ated it, not even Confucius, as the following anecdote shows: Zigong wished to do away with
the sacrificial sheep of the announcement rite of the new moon. The master (Confucius)
said,“Si, you cherish the sheep, I cherish the rite.”28 According to one traditional commen-
tary, the ritual of the announcement of the full moon, which was being carried on in the state
Gopal Sukhu
• 154 •
of Lu, had already been abolished by the Duke of Wen, but the ritualists continued to sacri-
fice a sheep on the occasion of the new moon. Zigong, thinking this wasteful, suggested
doing away with the sheep sacrifice as well. Confucius, unconcerned with the sheep, lamented
the neglect of yet another of the ancient rituals.
Here Confucius seems implicitly to condone the violence and waste of sacrifice (the vic-
tim’s meat may well have been eaten by participants, but Confucius’ opinion has nothing to
do with such practical considerations), and this is perhaps surprising to those of us, millennia
away, who tend to associate Confucius with our “humanism,” wherein there is no harbor for
animal sacrifice. What concerns Confucius is not the sheep as “fellow creature” or item of
exchange, but its transformation in the ritual context into food for spirits. We of course know
that Confucius did not talk about spirits. He spoke of making sacrifices to dead parents “as
if ” they were present, whereas he could easily have simply stated that when one sacrifices
something one is feeding the spirits of one’s parents. He also spoke of serving the spirits, but
keeping distant from them. Late Warring States Confucianism (I use this term in preference
to “ruism”—preferred by many scholars—because it is more generally familiar) as expounded
by Xunzi repeated and clarified what Confucius’ position implied for them:
Here the spirits populate only vulgar interpretation and not the gentle mind, which finds
comfort in what the rituals, despite their violence, express: loyalty, love, and so on. Further
exemplification of this internal orientation of Confucian ritual occurs in a number of places
in the literature, especially in a passage from the Liji quoted by Sima Qian:
• 155 •
The Grand Unity in this passage is an impersonal concept, like heaven and earth, beyond
frivolous mortal appeal. For Emperor Wu’s shamans, however, it was a personal divinity whose
features could be depicted and worshiped. The cult of Grand Unity involved such extrava-
gances as an octagonal purple altar, images of the eight directions of the universe ornamented
in particolored filigree, and cloth embroidered in hatchet-shaped patterns and jade. The Han
histories also mention subsidiary shrines surrounding the main shrine and a corps of female
musicians. We know of the details mainly through a memorial by Kuang Heng requesting
their elimination. Kuang Heng
eventually succeeded in influencing
the court to abolish many state cults
that the Confucians deemed ob-
jectionable, including that of the
Grand Unity. One of the practices
that seems particularly to have
alarmed Kuang Heng in the Grand
Unity rites was the burial of a
model of the imperial chariot. Bur-
ial of slaughtered victims or carved
images was a common feature of
Han ritual sacrifice and magic.
Whatever its particular significance
was in the Grand Unity rites, the
chariot was one of the traditional
symbols of the state, and a tradi-
tionalist scholar like Kuang Heng
could not but have read it thus: the
Figure 9.2 Drawing of Taiyi centered between the Rain
Master and the Thunder Lord over green and yellow dragons martial emperor is willing to sacri-
[after Li Ling b, ] fice the whole state for the sake of
his supramundane enterprise.
So disturbed was Kuang Heng by the burial of the carved image of the imperial chariot
that when he edited the Han dynastic hymns, he expunged the line “Simurgh chariot and
dragon scales”—that is, the imperial chariot’s verbal image—from the hymn to the Grand
Unity.31
Emperor Wu’s offending hymn was composed in the Chu mode. Use of the Chu mode
in the composition of religious music of course did not begin with Emperor Wu. We have
seen that his ancestor, Liu Bang (Emperor Gaozu), used a variety of ancient modes, but pre-
ferred the Chu mode over all others in his maintenance and elaboration of the many and
eclectic religious rites of the hated First Emperor of Qin. The Chu mode thus came to be
associated with liturgical settings having strong overtones of the regime that had raised the
cruelest hand against the old Confucian literati—the group with which the Han Reformists
most closely identified.
Gopal Sukhu
• 156 •
Historians of the Later Han considered shamanistic rites the salient barbarian character-
istic of Chu. The term “yin” (excessive), which, as we have seen, was used for the Chu rites,
was also applied to Emperor Wu’s rites. In the case of rites involving a ritual love relationship
between the shaman and the invoked spirit, the word “yin” also carried the meaning “lewd.” 32
Although it is not clear that Emperor Wu’s rites were actually lewd and not merely excessive,
they certainly drew criticism from the Reformists for a kind of promiscuity that was not
merely sexual. The goal of Emperor Wu’s vast ceremonies was to extend his earthly power
into the celestial realms. To the Confucian mind it was an attempt to achieve an illicit inti-
macy with the cosmic powers—illicit because it was direct. To use a late Warring States meta-
phor, it was like a marriage arranged without relying on the proper go-betweens—which the
Reformists conceived themselves to be.33
A desire to be in direct contact with divinity entailed also a will to escape the restraining
force of cyclical history—or the Confucian version of it. It was to conceive of the dynasty
as the First Emperor had conceived of it: as a line extending eternally into ever-increasing
splendor, rather than as a circle whereon any point of departure is also a point of return. This
cyclical time is of course derived from the agricultural time of the peasants, with its seasonal
patterns of sowing and reaping, rearing and slaughter, activity and rest. Emperor Wu, in
attempting, like the cruel First Emperor, to maintain far-flung armies of conquest and occu-
pation as well as a continuous supply of ritual offerings, was overextending and impoverish-
ing his peasantry—that is, ignoring the constraints of their circular time, the true source of
dynastic time.
Emperor Wu’s hymns in the Chu mode were to the Reformist ear songs of hubris, astral
promiscuity, and economic foolhardiness. And under Emperor Wu the Chu mode spread to
secular poetry and became the rage. The bridge between the hymns and secular poetry was
a poem that was probably introduced to Emperor Wu by his uncle, Liu An, the prince of
Huainan. The poem, called “Li sao” in Chinese, is usually translated in English under the title
“Encountering Sorrow.”
• 157 •
complex literary corpus, was rapidly filling literate memory. Their first tactic was to over-
whelm the text with the life of its supposed author, Qu Yuan.
The earliest trace of the biographical reading of the “Li sao” is to be found in a work not
included in the Chuci anthology, the “Diao Qu Yuan” (Mourning Qu Yuan) by Jia Yi (–
).34 This trace is a paraphrase (or different version) of the famous line from the luan
(envoi) of the “Li sao”:“It is all over; there are no men in the state, no one who knows me”
(yi yi zai, guo wu ren mo wo zhi xi). In Jia Yi’s poem, the line becomes: “It is all over, there is
no one in the state who knows me” (yi yi, guo qi mo wo zhi). Another famous “Li sao” line,
“Again what is there to cherish in the old city” (you he huai hu gu du)? becomes:“Why need
one cherish this old city” (he bi huai ci du ye). Preceding these lines in Jia Yi’s poem is the line:
“I have heard that Qu Yuan drowned himself in the Milo River.”35 This indicates that Jia Yi
was familiar with at least one aspect of the traditional biography of Qu Yuan that forms the
basis of the allegorical reading of the poem. That he understood at least some of the poem
according to that reading is evident in the line “Go through the nine regions looking for one’s
lord”(li zhou er xiang qi jun xi), which is a gloss on Ling Fen’s advice to consider the greatness
of the nine regions and go elsewhere to seek a woman. (In the Jia Yi poem, “lord” [ jun] is
substituted for “woman” [nü], which accords with the reading we find later in Wang Yi.)
There are various images of mythical beasts, such as phoenixes and dragons, in the “Diao
Qu Yuan” as well, but they are used in so conventional a manner that they shed no light on
how the same images were read in the “Li sao.” There is also the possibility that Jia Yi read
those images in the poem as conventionally as he used them himself.
Jia Yi wrote the “Diao Qu Yuan” because he felt that he himself was reliving events from
the life of Qu Yuan. Like Qu Yuan, he was a highly regarded, and thus envied, court advisor.
Those who envied him accused him of opportunism and influenced his sovereign, Emperor
Wen (r. – ) to banish him to the same region where Qu Yuan was supposed to have
been banished, the city of Changsha. Jia Yi’s poem was written near, and thrown into, the
Xiang River in a tributary of which (the Milo) Qu Yuan was said to have drowned himself.
This, at least, is what we are told by the Sima Qian biography of Jia Yi, which, against proper
chronology, is set side by side with that of Qu Yuan in the Shiji in what is called a liezhuan
(combined biography). This official biography of Qu Yuan was written sometime after the
death of Jia Yi. How Jia Yi became familiar with the details of Qu Yuan’s life to such an extent
that he could see events of his own life mirrored in them is unclear, but it is not impossible
that Jia Yi was himself one of the primary sources of data on the life of Qu Yuan.
Jia Yi was also the first to express disapproval of Qu Yuan’s suicide. To do so he used the
image of the coiled dragon, which protects itself by hiding in the watery depths, to represent
the proper course for the gentleman. This dragon-like self-protection, the poem makes clear,
did not exclude seeking out another king to serve.
The earliest historical mention of a poem called “Li sao” is in the Han Shu biography of
Liu An, prince of Huainan (d. ). (Huainan means “south of the Huai River”—part
of what was once the state of Chu.) Liu An was called upon by his nephew, Emperor Wu, to
produce a commentary (zhuan) for the “Li sao,” which he did within a day of receiving the
assignment. What was understood by “commentary” is a matter of debate. Some commenta-
Gopal Sukhu
• 158 •
tors say that it was a set of glosses and explications, like the Mao commentary on the Shijing.
Others say it was actually a quasi-poetic appreciation of the “Li sao.”36 The parts of the zhuan
that praise Qu Yuan and the “Li sao” are quoted without attribution in the biography of Qu
Yuan in the Shiji 37 and with attribution in the Li sao xu (Preface to the “Li Sao”) of Ban Gu
(–), author of the Han Shu.38 Wang Yi refers to it as an “explication” (zhangju) and implies
that his own explication was based on that of Liu An.39 It seems likely then that Liu An’s
zhuan contained both glosses and an appreciation of the poem:
“Li sao” is like li you [encountering a source of worry]. Now heaven is man’s
beginning, father and mother are his roots. If a man is in straits he returns to his
roots. Therefore people always cry, “God!” when they are being worked to the
bone, or cry “father” or “mother” when their hearts are aggrieved. Qu Yuan
walked a straight line on the right road; with every ounce of loyalty and knowl-
edge he had he served his lord, but slanderers came between them—a case
indeed of being “in straits.” If one is faithful yet held suspect, loyal yet vilified,
can one go on without resentment? Qu Yuan’s “Li sao” was born of such resent-
ment. In the Airs of the States there is eros without obscenity. In the Minor Ele-
gances there is indignation without disorder. The “Li sao” can be thought of as a
combination of the two.
From Di Ku [the legendary sage king] to Duke Huan of Qi [r. – ],
with Tang [first Shang king] and Wu [first Zhou dynasty king] in between, all of
his mentions of historical figures are for the purpose of criticizing his own
times. It makes clear the grandeur of the power of the Way and the principles
of order and disorder without leaving anything out. His text is tight, his word-
ing subtle, his intention pure, his behavior ethical. Words [that on the surface
seem] trivial point to what is most important. The analogues that he raises,
though near at hand, have far-reaching significance. His intentions are pure,
therefore his references are to the fragrant. His conduct was ethical, therefore
unto death he was not accepted [by his king]. Setting himself apart, he cleansed
himself amid the filthy. He shed corruption as a cicada sheds its shell to float
beyond the dust. He would harbor none of the world’s dirt. He gleamed un-
tainted. It is no exaggeration to say that the light of his intention rivaled that of
the sun and moon.40
The above passage presents the characteristic style and the basic point of contention of
Chuci criticism. The reading of the work merges with the reading of the author’s personal-
ity. Comments on the style and wording of the work are, as it were, spoken in the same breath
with comments on the mind and actions of the author. There is a cause-and-effect relation,
if not a continuum, between the author’s pure intention and his references to fragrant things.
This conception of unity of intention and expression was formulated very early in the his-
tory of Chinese letters. It is summed up in the sentence “Poetry verbalizes intention” from
the “Yao dian” chapter of one of the ancient Chinese “Classic of Documents,” the Shujing. It
• 159 •
is a definition of poetry that “became a dominant principle of Chinese poetic criticism and
literary theory.”41 There was disagreement, however, about whether the intention expressed
in the “Li sao” was a worthy one.
Liu An’s favorable comparison of the “Li sao” with the Shijing, a Confucian classic, became
the focal point of controversy. The classics were read as scripture. Scripture is the source of
norms. It is beyond criticism. It is, instead, a criticism of the reader, or rather provides the
occasion for the reader’s self-criticism—an exhortation to alter behavior, attitude, and at times
ontology to conform to the norm embodied in scripture. It also invites an unfavorable com-
parison of the world envisioned in scripture with both the real and the scripturally repre-
sented world. The norm may not be apparent in scripture, however, especially when the text
was not fashioned with the idea of broadcasting norms in mind. It is then necessary to intro-
duce a middleman, the commentator or interpreter, to tease the norms out of the text. In the
case of a scripture with a known author, the actions of the author as set forth in a biography
become part of the commentary of the text and an embodiment of the norm. The text is
then seen to grow organically from the normative life of the author so that the one affirms
and comments on the other.
At some point between the time of Liu An and that of Wang Yi, the term jing (scripture,
or classic) was applied to the “Li sao.” Whoever called the “Li sao” a jing was attempting to
activate this style of reading for the words of the poem and/or raise the poem to the status
of classic. But the “Li sao” never became a Confucian (or a Daoist) jing; we may infer that no
consensus ever developed that it should be made one.
According to the Han Shu, Liu An’s zhuan was written around the time Sima Qian put
together his Shiji. And it is Sima Qian who next mentioned the “Li sao,” in his famous letter
to Ren An.42 There Sima Qian mentions the poem in the same breath with the Chunqiu
(Spring and Autumn Annals)—which was supposed to have been edited by Confucius—the
Yijing (Book of Changes), Sunzi’s Bingfa (Art of War), and the Guoyu (Discourses of the
States), all works produced under duress by authors whose legitimate ambitions had been
frustrated. At the time, Sima Qian was himself producing his Shiji under duress. It is odd,
however, that whereas Sima Qian quotes hundreds of lines from the better poetry of Sima
Xiangru and Jia Yi in his biographies of them, he does not quote the “Li sao” in the biogra-
phy of Qu Yuan, citing instead the mediocre and spurious “Huai sha.” Could it be that Sima
Qian leaned toward the strain of the Chuci tradition that sought to rationalize the religious
imagery in the “Li sao,” preferring instead the pedestrian reworking (and interpretation) of
the “Li sao”—the “Ai ying” and the “Huai sha”—over the multivalent masterwork itself ?
Some such reason would seem to be required to account for the absence of this most sha-
manic of the Chu texts from the Shiji.
The literary exclusion of shamanism presaged the eventual political exclusion of shaman-
ism from the Han court. The character of some of Emperor Wu’s shamans made them easy
targets; Luan Da is a famous example. Originally a slave, Luan Da conned the emperor with
some of the oldest ploys in the occult book: he promised magical production of gold, con-
tact with the spirits, and the path to immortality if only he could be granted high office—so
that the empowering spirits would not despise him. The emperor, who was an easy mark,
Gopal Sukhu
• 160 •
therefore ennobled him to a rank above ministers of state. The shaman of course could not
make good on his promises and was executed in the end for deceiving the emperor.43
We should remember, when confronted by examples of imperial gullibility, that most
people at this time, noble or common, believed in such thaumaturgic power as the shamans
and magicians claimed to have. Toward the end of Emperor Wu’s reign, a well-established and
trusted official took advantage of this superstition to engineer a witchcraft scare in the capital.
The precipitating incidents involved the use of evil spells, false accusations, and of course sha-
mans. Before the episode of mass hysteria was over, tens of thousands had died by execution
or suicide. The purpose of it all was to provide a cover for the official’s attack on Empress
Wei’s family, whose ire he had earlier incurred and now sought to deflect. He was eventually
exposed, and the emperor had him executed and his shaman cohorts burned alive.44 Incidents
such as these no doubt made the emperor realize and lament that a good shaman is hard to
find. There is no evidence, however, that he was ever persuaded that one would be impossible
to find, despite the fact that he finally favored the Reformists and established their Confu-
cianism as state orthodoxy.
Reform of state rites was not effected during the emperor’s lifetime; it was carried out
slowly and with many reversals during the succeeding reigns. One by one the cults of divini-
ties inherited from the Qin, such as the Lord of Fire and the White, Green, and Yellow Lords,
were abolished, as were Emperor Wu’s cults to such divinities as Grand Unity and the Earth
Queen. Although the existence of the gods was not denied, they were subsumed under the
impersonal forces of heaven and earth. The ancient Zhou pattern of worship was, in the Han
Confucian vision,“reestablished.”
This explains why, as mentioned earlier, some of Emperor Wu’s hymns were edited to
accord with Confucian principles. The line in the hymn to the Heavenly Horse that reads, in
Sima Qian’s Shiji, “Grand Unity offers tribute” was altered, in Ban Gu’s Han Shu, to read,
“Grand Unity bestows,” thus demoting the earthly Emperor Wu to his proper position—
below the celestial powers.45 In the meantime, it is clear that shamans were at some point
prohibited from holding office because in the Hou Han Shou (History of the Later Han
Dynasty) a man cites the fact that he is from a shaman family as reason for his inappropriate-
ness for serving at court.46
By the second century the great Han scholars and exegetes were undertaking a herme-
neutic campaign against shamanism that was bolder than any before. The conspicuously
shamanistic “Li sao” provided a sort of test case. The text, while beautiful, said embarrassingly
shamanistic things, so it had to be “taught” to speak as a classical scholar would before it could
be admitted to higher literary society. The first step in that direction was to make the biog-
raphy of Qu Yuan, with whom many Confucians could identify, the exclusive key to reading
the text.
There was a challenge from within the Confucian camp, however, to this movement to
raise the “Li sao,” via Qu Yuan’s biography, to “classic” status. The challenge was articulated by
Yang Xiong ( – ) in his “Fan sao” (Contre Sao). He prefaces his poem by asking
rhetorically why someone like Qu Yuan, whose writing never failed to provoke tears and sur-
passed that of the celebrated Han poet Sima Xiangru, should have been rejected by his king.
• 161 •
The poem goes on to criticize Qu Yuan for not emulating Confucius, who, rather than com-
mit suicide, left his state of Lu when he found his talents unwelcome there. This is essentially
an extension of the criticism that Jia Yi articulated—suicide was not the proper course for a
gentleman.
Ban Gu, in his Li sao xu, quoting Liu An’s comparison of the “Li sao” to the classics,
declares,“This statement appears to go beyond the truth.” Because, says Ban Gu, quoting the
Shijing, the noble thing is “to protect one’s person” and not “show off one’s talents and raise
oneself above others,” and certainly not commit suicide as Qu Yuan did. By doing this, Qu
Yuan “lowered himself to the status of madmen.” By the last Ban Gu meant people whose
devotion to the Way made them act impetuously. Impetuosity included his “expressing his
resentment of King Huai,”47 his “ridicule of Pepper and Lan48 and his contending amid the
petty men who were endangering the state.”
It is through Ban Gu that we get a hitherto rare shift of attention away from Qu Yuan to
his text. Ban Gu quotes another fragment of the Liu An commentary where a reference to
the Wuzi (fifth son) in the “Li sao” is identified as Wu Zixu (d. ), a Spring and Autumn
period figure from the state of Chu famous for having exhumed the body of the king of
Chu, whipping it in revenge for the king’s murder of Wu’s father and brother. Ban Gu rightly
points out that this is a gross misidentification and goes on to say that in identifying histori-
cal figures like Archer Yi, Jiao, Shao Kang, and the two Yao sisters, commentators like Liu An
“have something to add or subtract according to what they know, but they still don’t get it
right. Therefore they pick and choose from all over the classics and the commentaries and
take [the results] as an explication.”49 He then goes on to call the “frequent reference to [such
things as] the Kunlun Mountains and after-death nuptials with Fu Fei” as “empty talk” with
no basis in the orthodox classics. What we have here, besides a reading of the quest for celes-
tial brides in the poem, is clear evidence that many of the allusions in the “Li sao” were as
difficult for early Han scholars as they were for later scholars, if not more so.
Ban Gu, of course, knew his history. But even his commentary was seen as inadequate by
Wang Yi, who criticized all the previous commentators for misreading characters and “con-
torting the meaning of the text.” Besides that,Wang Yi took Ban Gu to task for criticizing Qu
Yuan, citing other impetuous types like Wu Zixu, Bi Gan, and so on, who were recorded and
approved of in the Confucian histories.
Along with affiliating Qu Yuan with Confucian heroes,Wang Yi affiliates the “Li sao” with
Confucian texts:
The text of the “Li sao,” taking as its basis the Shi [Book of Odes] makes use of
the xing and adduces analogues as metaphors. Therefore, fine birds and fragrant
plants are used to correspond to persons of loyalty and integrity. Evil birds and
foul-smelling things are used as comparisons for slanderers and sycophants, Ling
Xiu and the Beautiful Person are used as comparisons for the sovereign, and Fu
Fei and the beautiful women are comparisons for worthy ministers. Dragons and
phoenixes are used to convey the noble person and the whirlwinds and rainbows
are taken as [images of ] the petty men.50
Gopal Sukhu
• 162 •
The xing, or “stimulus,” is the use of “natural images, repeated with variations to open or sub-
divide each stanza; they are juxtaposed without comment to the human situation . . . around
which the poem centers and seem, at first glance, unrelated to it.” The xing was isolated by
early commentators “as one of three rhetorical devices of the Book of Odes [the others being
comparison (bi) and exposition ( fu)].”51 The xing, if it occurs at all in the “Li sao,” is the least
frequent of the Shijing rhetorical devices to be observed there. Wang Yi mentions it first but
offers no examples of it, preferring to point out many instances of comparison. His is clearly
a vain attempt to trace the ancestry of the “Li sao” back to the Shijing by simply declaring that
it uses this peculiarly Shijing rhetorical device.
The intellectual integrity of Wang Yi’s other attempts to prove the filiation of the “Li sao”
with other classics can be surmised from a passage from his postface, where he juxtaposes “Li
sao” sentences with sentences from various classics and forcibly reads them against each other:
The text of the “Li sao” depends on the Five Classics to establish its meaning. “I
am the descendant of Lord Gaoyang” is [Shijing ] “The one who first bore
our people was [Lady] Yuan of Jiang.”“Twisted qiulan to make a belt ornament”
is [Shijing ] “We will roam, we will ramble; her girdle stones are qiong stones
and ju stones.”“In the evening I pick the evergreens on the islet” is [Yijing] “The
submerged dragon one does not employ.” “Yoke up four dragons and make a
chariot of a phoenix,” is [Yijing] “At the right time yoke up six dragons and ride
through the sky.” 52
The spuriousness of this method is not difficult to detect. Indeed, Liu Xie (d. ca. ), who
epitomizes the inability of traditional Chuci scholarship either to live with or without Wang
Yi’s readings, declared Wang Yi’s judgments “unfactual” and “unperceptive” (he said the same
about Ban Gu’s for different reasons). Nevertheless, the question for Liu Xie and many other
traditional scholars was not whether or not the “Li sao” should be compared with the classics,
but merely how.53
Wang Yi’s line-by-line annotations, however, have proved far more deleterious. According
to Wang Yi, as is reflected in the Hawkes translation below, the beginning of the poem reads:
Hawkes, in translating jiang as “passed from the womb,” has followed Wang Yi’s gloss on the
word. Examination of Warring States and early Han literature reveals not one instance of the
word used to mean “to pass from the womb,” “be born,” and so on. The usual meaning of
the word is “to descend,” usually from the sky, as do blessings from heaven, rain, birds that die
in flight, and divinities. The last line quoted above should read something like: “On the day
geng-yin, I descended from the sky.”
• 163 •
If Wang Yi had glossed the word in its proper sense while insisting that the poem is an alle-
gorical biography of Qu Yuan, he would have had to explain how it was that a minister of
Chu descended from the sky. Autobiographies, however, had best have a birth at the begin-
ning. He could, nevertheless, have taken descending from the sky as representing a birth, but
then he would have had to admit that the speaker of the poem is a shaman or spirit, or both.
He would then have had to allow the distasteful possibility that Qu Yuan, in writing this
poem, had assumed the persona of the shaman. That, of course, could not be allowed, since
Qu Yuan, for the exegetes of the second century, was a kind of hermeneutical agent whose
mission it was to stamp out or at least domesticate Chu shamanism.
When the persona tells us that he descends into the world on the date Zhu Rong (God
of Fire), an ancestral divinity of Chu, was appointed,55 Wang Yi claims that it is simply Qu
Yuan noting his own birthday. A few lines later, when the persona of the poem gives his name
as Ling Jun, which is a shamanic title and means “Numinously Balanced” (or “Numinous
Potter’s Wheel”),Wang Yi intervenes by saying that the name is in fact part of a complex code
that, when read properly, renders the name Qu Yuan.56 Later in the poem the spirit/shaman
flies through the air in a phoenix chariot in search of the goddess Fu Fei, but Wang Yi, no
longer able to misread the literal, insists that this merely represents Qu Yuan’s search for a like-
minded scholar-recluse.57
The shamanic “Nine Songs” were also forced into the ill-fitting clothes of the Qu Yuan
biography. “Xiang Jun” is a shamanic love song to the presiding divinity of the Xiang River.
As in most of the “Nine Songs,” the shamanic courtship is not successful, and toward the end
of the poem the speaker throws a sleeve (according to Wang Yi) into the water as a pledge of
love. Wang Yi naturally sees this speaker as Qu Yuan, who, in his frustration at the king’s
refusal to recall him from banishment, is threatening to take off his clothes, go naked, and join
the barbarian tribes. This what-you-see-is-not-what-you-get hermeneutics is characteristic of
much of the Chuci commentarial tradition.
Conclusion
The Qu Yuan myth represents the final stage in the domestication of Chu, a process that
commenced at the beginning of the Han dynasty, when memories of the ancient state were
still fresh and its customs were still alive among those Chu commoners who became the Han
aristocracy. The Confucian intelligentsia, on whom the survival of the dynasty greatly
depended, called Chu barbaric for its shamanism, although shamanism flourished below them
among the masses and above them among the aristocrats. Confucians made shamanism an
emblem of what was excessive in the policies of the Han imperial house and used it as a target
that could be struck with impunity in literature, political rhetoric, and the construction of his-
tory. Confucianism officially triumphed over shamanism, but shamanism lived on in both the
general imagination and in texts. When the Confucians were politically weak, they chose to
fight this remnant shamanism primarily by attacking texts; when they were strong, they drove
both its practices and its practitioners out of state ritual as well. The commentary of Wang Yi
reflects the equivocal nature of the Confucian triumph, because shamanism never wholly dis-
Gopal Sukhu
• 164 •
appeared, either in the provinces or in the palace. Its traditions were of a higher antiquity than
those of Confucianism. Its traditions underlay the ancient ritual tradition the Confucians
claimed to transmit. This was indirectly recognized by Xunzi and his followers. For them, the
ritual sacrifice was amenable to different levels of reading corresponding to levels of under-
standing that varied according to one’s place in the social hierarchy. In the same way that the
subject is an instrument for the sovereign, the literal and lowest reading of the ritual is merely
the vehicle for the higher tenor of aristocratic understanding. The two levels exist separately
but not independently. But in the Han dynasty the Confucians encountered again the incon-
gruity that forced Confucius into teaching in the first place: an inability of those in the high-
est seats of sovereignty to interpret ritual sacrifice other than on the lowest level. Their
response to this situation is exemplified by their desperate Chuci hermeneutics: they deny the
vehicle, sometimes replacing it with the tenor, sometimes not—that is, where an unaccept-
able metaphor occurs, they sabotage it. For Wang Yi and his exegetical posterity,“to descend
from the sky” is neither literally that nor a metaphor for birth; instead, it is, literally, Qu Yuan’s
birth. A shaman throwing a sleeve into a river is neither that nor a metaphor for anything else;
it is, literally, Qu Yuan threatening to undress and go native. Qu Yuan becomes a kind of
exegetical colonizer representing the forces of “civilization” in the barbarian texts of Chu. His
life becomes their new and unwelcome context. And when we read him thus into the “Nine
Songs” and the “Li sao,” we get a taste of what “civilization” meant to many on whom it was
imposed: distortion.
• 165 •
Conclusion
John S. Major
I n the foregoing pages we have attempted to define Chu—to delineate, in other words, a
picture of Chu history and culture that mirrors the long and complex history of the state
of Chu itself. We hope that our efforts will aid in making accessible to contemporary under-
standing a sense of Chu as a distinct, and distinctive, political and cultural realm within the
large and diverse polity of early China. As the subtitle of this book suggests, we have con-
cerned ourselves here with questions of “image and reality.” The contributors have, we think,
demonstrated that so much is now known from archaeological and textual sources about the
state of Chu that it is no longer reasonable (if it ever was) to think of Chu as a historical, cul-
tural, or geographical monolith. It
is clear, too, that the image of Chu
that has dominated Chinese histor-
ical thinking since the Han, and
modern scholarship as well, derives
primarily from an image of the
“southern, barbarian” Chu created
and nurtured during the Han
period, an image that obscured the
historical reality of pre-Han Chu.
If we have succeeded in showing Carved dragon-like creature with a cicada at the top of the rear
how the image of Chu has, over a facing leg, a dragon biting a phoenix on the front facing leg, a
long snake climbing up the withered front back leg, and a small
long period of time, spread a veil snake biting a frog on the rear back leg, Mashan [courtesy of
over the reality of Chu, then the Xu Shaohua]
• 167 •
more complex and nuanced picture we paint here will, we hope, encourage people interested
in ancient China to think beyond the level of an alluring but misleading stereotype of Chu
culture.
We began with political history and historical geography, looking at Chu as one of many
early states of the Zhou realm—a state ruled by an aristocracy of (at least nominal) northern
lineage, but located in the middle reaches of the Han River valley, an area somewhat remote
from the Central States. We saw how Chu gradually grew from being just one of many states
to being one of the greatest kingdoms of pre-imperial China. In the process its center of
gravity moved steadily east and south; at the same time its area increased, to encompass, at the
height of Chu power, virtually the entire basin of the lower Yangtze River. In the course of
this expansion Chu absorbed many states and peoples who were, in their own estimation and
in the regard of the people of the Central States,“barbarians,” or at the very least not wholly
Chinese. (The question of who was Chinese, and by what criteria, was a contested issue at the
time and remains a contested issue of historical interpretation; hence the quotation marks
here around the word “barbarian.”) These “barbarian” tendencies were encouraged by the far-
flung networks of trade and cultural exchange that existed not only between Chu and the
world of northern China, but with many non-Chinese regions as well, in the south, west, and
north.
We saw, too, how the people of Chu evolved a distinctive style and decorative vocabulary
in art, evolving new shapes and types of decor in bronze vessels and playing a leading role in
the development of lacquerware and silk textiles. As Xu Shaohua suggests in his review of
Chu archaeology, there is little evidence for a distinctive Chu culture during the Western
Zhou period, when Chu was centered in the Han River valley. But there is little doubt that
by the end of the Warring States period, and even more so in the early decades of the unified
China of Qin and Han, Chu was culturally distinct from the states of the north—or at least
both northerners and the people of Chu thought so. The phenomenon of Chu distinctive-
ness thus seems to have evolved over the course of time and as Chu became successively larger
and more eastern and southern. The Chu rulers, conservative and even reactionary in their
adherence to Zhou ritual norms for the early centuries of their reign, nevertheless gradually
evolved new forms of ritual expression and new techniques of administrative control that
reflected growing Chu cultural distinctiveness on the one hand, and the exigencies of socio-
political circumstances on the other.
We saw, finally, how in the last century or so of the existence of the Chu state, and for
some decades after its political (but not cultural) demise, Chu culture apparently was domi-
nated by forms of religious and literary expression that were so striking as to impress them-
selves deeply in the consciousness of their neighbors to the north. In early Han China a set
of cultural characteristics became widely identified as “Chu culture,” and indeed these char-
acteristics were seen as so exotically desirable that they became an important element in cul-
tural fashion throughout China as a whole. They included the beautiful lacquerwares of Chu
(analyzed by So in chapter ), a shamanistic religious culture (Major, chapter ), and the poetic
forms of the Chuci anthology, reinvented as the Han rhymeprose rhapsody called the fu
(Sukhu, chapter ).
John S. Major
• 168 •
“Southern” culture—represented by distinctive bronze and lacquer vessels, superbly
woven silk textiles, lacquer tableware, and other luxury goods; a sense of humid, semi-tropical
ease and a wealthy, languid way of life; local styles of clothing and adornment; and most espe-
cially a literature of shamanic ecstasy and “farflight” spirit journeys—was, in the collective
imagination of the Han capital and its political and literary elites, indelibly Chu. That Han
perception has created problems ever since, because it was so strong, so vivid, and so pervasive
in the available accounts of Chu (e.g., in the writings of Sima Qian) as nearly to preclude the
possibility of thinking clearly about the centuries of Chu history that preceded the Han. For
it is undeniably true that this stereotype of “Chu culture” is a product of the very last decades
of the centuries-long existence of the Chu state, and of lands on the eastern and southern
periphery of the enormous and diverse Chu territories. Having looked in detail at that his-
tory and at those territories, is it still permissible to acquiesce in the received wisdom and
define Chu culture as the product of third- and second-century Anhui and Hunan?
Our stance is not to reject the age-old conventional understanding of Chu culture, but to
see it as one element in a larger set of historical and cultural realities that define Chu. In doing
so, we are aware of the danger of appearing to accept the part as the whole, of allowing the
stereotype to stand in for a more complex reality. It is all too easy, for example, to equate the
Mawangdui tomb treasures with “Chu culture.” But to imagine that the material culture, polit-
ical and religious beliefs and rituals, and social and economic life of the Spring and Autumn
period Chu rulers at Danyang or Ying were the same as those of the aristocrats entombed at
Mawangdui would be, as this book has shown, to distort history beyond recognition.
At the same time, we think that the following two statements are true: that from the
beginning Chu was culturally “special” because it represented an extension of Central States
power into a peripheral region where indigenous peoples and their culture(s) were likely, over
the long run, to modify significantly the Central States-style culture of the Chu ruling elite;
and that the geographical, political, ethnic, and other forces that shaped the history of Chu led
in the end to something that can be described meaningfully as “Chu culture.” The Mawang-
dui finds might not typify the culture(s) of Chu for most of the historical existence of that
state, but they do at least represent one particular epitome, in Hunan, of the Chu artistic and
cultural tradition.
In other words, what we have tried to do here is not assert that the vivid image of “Chu
culture” that people have had since the Han is wrong, nor suggest that that image needs to be
discarded. Rather, we have tried to broaden our readers’ understanding of Chu beyond that
stereotypical image and to define Chu in terms of its long and complex history as an expand-
ing state and an evolving culture. The phrase “Chu culture” perhaps will inevitably call to
mind images of silk brocade and scarlet lacquer, shamanic rituals and poetic lamentations, and
we have no quarrel with that; but we hope to have shown that “Chu culture,” so conceived,
has deep and complex roots that deserve attention in their own right.
Conclusion
• 169 •
Appe ndix
Translation of
the Chu Silk Manuscript
Li Ling and
Constance A. Cook
Introduction
T he Chu Silk Manuscript is the only published and complete manuscript among several
discovered in by tomb robbers in Zidanku, Changsha, Hunan. In the owner,
Cai Jixiang, asked John H. Cox to
carry these manuscripts to the
United States, and they are now in
the Arthur M. Sackler Gallery in
Washington, D.C. The manuscript
dates to about and was
buried with a man approximately
forty years old. The small size of
the tomb and the apparent lack of
bronze vessels in it suggest that the
man was not an important official.
The Zidanku manuscripts can
be compared to the Mawangdui
Silk Manuscripts, dating to Chu Silk Manuscript [courtesy of the Arthur M. Sackler Foun-
and also from Changsha. Both sets dation, New York]
of manuscripts were found inside
containers—the Zidanku manuscripts in a woven bamboo box and the Mawangdui manu-
scripts in a lacquer box. The latter also contained flutes, bamboo strips in rolls, oyster shells,
and branches of plants. Some of the Mawangdui manuscripts were folded in a manner simi-
lar to the Chu Silk Manuscript. Other Mawangdui manuscripts were rolled around wooden
• 171 •
tablets. The former were approximately the same size as the Chu Silk Manuscript, with a
width of about forty-eight centimeters; the latter were much smaller, about twenty-four
centimeters in width.
The Chu Silk Manuscript consists of both illustrations and texts; it is designed to resemble
a divination board (shi; also sometimes called a diviner’s board or cosmograph), which is itself
a model of the cosmos.1 This type of instrument, of which several have been found in Han
tombs, consists of a round board symbolizing heaven that can rotate on a pivot on top of a
square board representing the earth. There are essentially two types of divination board: one
has a dial plate divided into the four directions, with eight degree markers, or points, indicated
along with a central point called the Ninth Palace. In this palace and along the points are
arranged the nine celestial gods. The second type of divination board has an additional set of
twelve degree markers indicated to represent twelve divisions of time (such as hours or
months) and the twelve matching gods. The central controlling god of the first type is Grand
Unity (Taiyi); that of the second type is the Northern Dipper (Beidou).2 In some examples,
instead of degrees or points there are twelve blocks indicating the months, which are further
marked into twelve smaller units.
The Chu Silk Manuscript is ringed by pictures of twelve gods representing the months.
Each side represents a season, and each god is accompanied by a corresponding text of do’s
and don’ts for that month (much like the “Yueling” or “Monthly Rules” chapter of the Liji).
In the four corners of the manuscript are pictures of trees, which represent the pillars hold-
ing up the heavens mentioned in Section B in the translation below. In the center of the man-
uscript, instead of Grand Unity or the Northern Dipper, is the main text. The main text is
divided into two large sections, one twice as long as the other and each written upside-down
relative to the other.
Each section of the text involves some aspect of the calendar. The Inner Long Text (posi-
tioned with winter on top, spring to the right, and summer below) concerns the year. The
Inner Short Text (with summer on top, autumn to the right, and winter below) concerns the
seasons. The brief texts around the rim, as indicated above, concern the months.
Generally, the writer of the manuscript was concerned that the calendar be used with
proper respect and knowledge. Otherwise, the text threatens, cosmic collapse and evil cata-
strophic events would occur. The Inner Long Text consists of three tales or subsections: sec-
tion A warns about unnatural events and demonic influences should the year be improperly
calibrated or the calendar contravened (thus offending the [High] God). Section B shows the
importance of a proper calendar in receiving a good and auspicious year from the gods. Sec-
tion C warns that if the people are not respectful in their sacrifices to the God, they will run
into trouble.
The Inner Short Text describes the divine creation of the calendar and how it brought
order out of chaos. It also can be divided into three subsections: section A describes how the
gods separated heaven and earth, regulated themselves according to hot and cold qi (i.e., yang
and yin), and determined the four seasons by pacing out their boundaries. Section B describes
how the gods supported the heavens with five pillars of different colors, and how the sun and
Appendix
• 172 •
moon emerged. Section C describes the division of time into days (and into groups of ten
days) and of days into four time periods.
Translation
Chapter 1:Year (Inner Long Text)
Section A
If [. . . ] and the length of the lunar months becomes too long or too short, then they will
3
not fit the proper degree and spring, summer, autumn, and winter will [not] be [. . . ] regu-
lar; the sun, moon, stars, and planets will erratically overstep their paths. When (the months)
are too long, too short, contrary, or chaotic, (the growth of ) the grasses and trees have no reg-
ularity. This is [called] yao, “demonic” (influences or omens). When heaven and earth create
calamities, the Heaven’s Cudgel (Tianpou) star creates (sweeping) destruction, sending (the
destruction) down throughout all four regions (of the earth). Mountains collapse, springs
gush forth geysers. This is called “contravention.” If you contravene the years (and) the
months, then upon entering the seventh or eighth day of the month there will be fog, frost,
and clouds of dust, and you will not be able to function according (to heaven’s plan). When
heaven rains [. . . ], it is a contrary month; keep still.4 If it is the first, second, or third month,
it is called nizhongwang, “death by a contrary end.” [. . . ] their country. If it is the fourth or
fifth month, it is called luanjiwang, “death by a disordered cycle.” [. . . ]. In such a year, there
will be trouble in the western territories, and if the sun and the moon get out of order, there
will be halos surrounding (them) and trouble in the eastern territories. All under heaven will
be at war and harm will come to the king.
Section B
Among the years, one is deni, “Favor and Affection,” when if [. . . ] the orbit of the five
demonic (influences), then the grass, the trees, and the people will thereby [. . . (achieve?)]
regularity in the pace of the four [periods (of days, months, or years)]. When [. . . ] demonic
(influences) from above, the three seasons (spring, summer, and autumn) will thus proceed. In
the year of Favor and Affection after three seasons have passed [. . . ], [. . . ] will fall. It is by
numerical layout that the months are corrected to be only twelve [. . . ]. If one disrupts a
Favor and Affection (year), then there will emerge from the (underground) Yellow Pool [a . . .
(something evil)] which, moving in and out of [. . . tong (some kind of channel)], will
create misfortune for those below. When both the sun and the moon are in disorder, the stars
and constellations will not shine. Once the sun and the moon have fallen into disorder, the
division of the year will then [. . . ], and the seasonal rains will come and go without regu-
larity or constancy. One fears that the common people do not yet understand and take the
(layout of ) the calendar [. . . ] (to be) invariable and unadaptable. The people consider [. . .
] that the three constancies [the sun, the moon, and the stars?] will be destroyed, and the four
risings [the four seasons?] will be ruined, thereby [. . . (disrupting?)] the cosmic regularity.
Only when the gods, the Five Governors [of the Five Phases], and the four risings are with-
Tr a n s l a t i o n o f t h e C h u S i l k M a n u s c r i p t
• 173 •
out problems and the reliable (calendrical) constancies guide the people will the Five Gover-
nors be illuminated and the Hundred Spirits be thus presented with sacrificial feasts. This is
what is called deni, “Favor and Affection,” when the many spirits are favorable. The God said:
“Extend your respect to them! Never be disrespectful. When heaven creates good fortune, the
spirits will then bring it to you. When heaven creates demonic (influences), the gods will
(likewise) provide you with them. Be attentive and respectful in (your) preparations and the
heavenly pattern will thus be the guiding standard. In the end, the heavenly [. . . (pattern?)]
will be the model for the people below. Respect it without fail!
Section C
If the people do not use [. . . ] and travel along the mountains and rivers, streams and valleys
without respect, then their sacrifices are not accepted and the God will bring them chaos. If
the people can obtain enough provisions, they will not make trouble for each other. If they
do not see [. . . ], the halos will come. If the people do not understand the year, they will not
offer sacrifices. If [. . . ], it will be unfavorable for the people, there will be some [. . .
(trouble?)]. Affairs involving earth [such as plowing or building] will not be satisfactory; it will
be inauspicious.
Section B
The elder spirit is called Qing-[. . . ]–gan (Green-?-Pillar), the second is Zhusidan (Red-
Four-?), the third is Liuhuangnan (?-Yellow-?), and the fourth is [. . . ]–mogan (?-Black-
Pillar). After hundreds and thousands of years, the sun and the moon were finally born, (but)
the Nine Continents were not level so the mountains [. . . (collapsed?)]. Therefore the gods
created [. . . ] to cover (the Nine Continents). When the skydome shook, they used green,
red, yellow, white, and black trees as supporting poles. Yan Di thereupon ordered Zhu Rong
to make the four gods descend to set up the Three Heavens and with [. . . ] distribute the
Appendix
• 174 •
four poles. He said:“If it is not a case of the Nine Heavens6 crashing down, do not disturb(?)
the heavenly powers.” The God then finally made the movement of the sun and the moon.
Section C
Gong Gong calculated and set in motion the Ten Days [the Heavenly Stems] and the Four
Times [periods, of a day, month, or year]. [. . . ] spirits then stood still7 making four [. . . ]
without resting. When the hundred spirits and the wind and rain became calendrically incor-
rect and disordered, he made the sun and the moon take turns working and resting. Thus we
have the divisions of late night and morning, afternoon and evening.
Tr a n s l a t i o n o f t h e C h u S i l k M a n u s c r i p t
• 175 •
Section G [Seventh Month]
[The seventh month is called] Cang. (During this month) you cannot make an opening 9 [. . .
]. It will be greatly unfavorable to the country. There will be a bird flying between the sky
and the land. [The month’s complete title is] Cangmode,“Cang Is to Attain Nothing.”
Appendix
• 176 •
Notes
Note: Citations are by author, if known, and year of publication (an “author” is frequently a group or an
institution). For anonymous journal articles, entries are listed by journal name and year of publication;
anonymous books are listed by place and year of publication. The same conventions are followed in the
bibliography.
Preface
1. We designate dates as Before Common Era () and Common Era (), corresponding to the familiar ..
and ..; dates in this book should be assumed to be unless otherwise noted.
2. For an examination of the pitfalls of relying completely on archaeological materials to define the cultural
aspects of a people, see Renfrew .
3. There are too many scholars of Chu to list individually. Wen Chongyi () and Jao Tsung-yi () were
the first to attempt synthethic views of the Chu culture in light of archaeological material. The only book
in a Western language on Chu culture is the recently published collection of papers from a Sackler Gallery
symposium (Lawton ). In some ways, our book can be viewed as a sequel to the discourse on Chu pre-
sented in the Sackler volume. Li Xueqin, a scholar who has contributed extensively to our knowledge of
Chu, presents a broad overview of the southern cultural region that has been traditionally associated with
Chu (Lawton , –).
4. Barnard .
5. K. C. Chang .
6. Barnard .
7. Barnard .
8. K. C. Chang , .
Introduction
1. The quote is attributed to Chen She. See Shiji , the biography of Xiang Yu; Burton Watson , –.
2. See Sima Qian’s autobiography, Shiji . He was born north of the Wei River in Shaanxi and traveled exten-
sively by river. Sima Qian identified Laozi, the putative author of the Daodejing, as a native of Chu serving
the Chu court. See Loewe , .
• 177 •
3. Shiji ,“Huozhi,” –; cf. Han Shu, “Dilizhi” description.
4. Shiji ..
5. Guoyu, SBBY ed.,“Chuyu, xia,” : b.
6. See Peters’ exploration of Chu society, chapter ; also where she discusses the question of a man ethnic group
as well as the tales associated with early Chu kingship (, –). See also Cook , –.
7. Cook , –; Shaughnessy , –; Rawson , .
8. Shaughnessy , –; for his discussion of other Western Zhou bronzes mentioning attacks against Chu,
see –.
9. Li Xiandeng . See also Peters , –; Cook , – (for an examination of paleographical evi-
dence).
10. See Cook for a discussion of the High Gods of Chu. Zhu Rong seems to be associated with stars as
well as stoves. One wonders, too, if Danyang, “the Sunny side of Cinnabar [mountain or river],” the pre-
sumed site of the proto-Chu state, was not also a Han fiction.
11. Han Shu, “Dilizhi” no. xia, Han Shu buzhu .. For the Han definition of yinsi, see Stein , . For
a discussion of Chu rites, see Cook , –. The Han southerner Ying Shao never used the term yinsi
to refer to Chu practices, but only to those of Kuaiji, the southeastern region in former Yue territory (Fengsu
tongyi tongjian , ).
12. See Sukhu, chapter .
13. Shiji .. The capital was Pengcheng (modern Suzhou, Anhui), the site of popular Taoist and early Bud-
dhist cult activities during the Later Han dynasty (Maspero , ). The Han vision of Chu is illustrated
in the “Moneymakers” chapter of the Shiji; see Burton Watson , –. Sima Qian discussed the Han
regions of Western Chu, Eastern Chu, and Southern Chu. He divided each into miniregions and related
anecdotes regarding their individual cultural temperaments and natural resources. Pengcheng was the center
between the Western and Eastern Chu regions. Southern Chu consisted essentially of all lands south of the
ancient capital of Chu in Shouchun, Anhui, and all lands below the Yangtze, including Changsha. He
claimed that Western and Southern Chu shared many similar customs. Southern Chu people, he claimed,
were “fond of fancy phrases and clever at talking”; they were for the most part untrustworthy (Burton Wat-
son , ). Eastern Chu, he noted, included the old city of Wu, a locus of many wandering scholars ear-
lier, and a source of salt and metal (from nearby mountains). The city of Jiangling was in Western Chu and
was known as a gateway to the Wu Mountain and the Ba region. It drew on the Yunmeng lakes for resources.
14. For the Huaiyi and Dongyi during the Western Zhou period, see Shaughnessy , – passim.
15. Sima Qian noted that the Yue worshiped gui (“Huozhi,” ).
16. See Major and Sukhu, chapters and , respectively. Perhaps it was during this time that the southerners
became associated with snakes. See the definitions of the man and min as recorded by the dictionary,
the Shuowen jiezi (Shuowen jiezi gulin zhengbu hebian , –). See the discussion of Chu’s obsession with
snakes in So and Major, chapters and , respectively.
17. See Blakeley, chapter .
18. See Peters and chapter of this book; Huang Gangzheng and Wu Mingsheng .
19. This was the role of the occupant of Tomb at Mawangdui. See studies by Gao Zhixi, Tan Qixiang, and
Zhou Shirong on the military maps found in his tomb; Hunansheng bowuguan , –; Kaiya .
20. Liu Shishan .
21. See Sukhu, chapter .
22. Shiji : ; Hawkes , , pointed out that Qu Yuan was also a hero of Sima Qian.
23. Knechtges , ; Hawkes , , , , –.
N o t e s t o Page s 2 – 9
• 178 •
senses) in earlier times. There was an entity of some kind known as “Chu” in Shang times, but whether this
was our Chu is a matter of considerable debate. Duan Yu () follows the traditional view that it was. The
epigraphic evidence, pro and con, has been debated between Wang Guanghao ( and ; , –)
and Zhang Jun (b).
3. The dates for Western Zhou reigns herein generally follow Shaughnessy , –, slightly simplified.
Some suspect that Chu assisted the Zhou in the conquest. The idea makes sense, but the evidence for it is
not solid.
4. Western Zhou history and archaeology are treated in Hsu and Linduff .
5. Shiji . ( ed.), ; ed., . For discussions on Yu Xiong’s specific role, see Shen Changyun
and ; Li Jin . General discussions of Chu relations with the Western Zhou may be found in Shu
Zhimei and Wu Yongzhang ,Yang Kuan b, Tang Jiahong , and Duan Yu .
6. This is the bone inscribed with “Chuzi lai gao,”“the lord of Chu came to report”; see Gu Tiefu , –.
There is some difference of opinion, however, as to whether this dates to before or after the conquest (mate-
rial from Baoshan—see chapter —suggests the latter). It should be noted that several other “Chu” inscrip-
tions in the same corpus (see Chen Quanfang ) do not necessarily relate to our Chu (see Wang
Guanghao ).
7. Shiji .– (); Zuozhuan, Zhao /.. According to another tradition, enfeoffment had taken place
earlier, under Yu Xiong’s son or grandson (Xiong Li); see Blakeley , . It has even been argued that
the event had taken place under Yu Xiong (Sun Chong’en , but see the response of Xu Jun ).
8. Shiji ./. Chen Changyuan () argues that the Duke of Zhou’s “flight” to Chu actually was an
attack on Chu. (A Guoyu passage [.b] could be taken to contradict the impression given elsewhere that
Zhou/Chu relations were on good footing during King Cheng’s reign.)
9. Another factor may have been growing Chu independence while Zhou was preoccupied in other quarters.
10. The sources are not unanimous on the point. For discussions of the episode, see Wang Mingge and
(more critically) Gong Weiying .
11. This may have been prompted by the fact that circumstances at the Zhou court had become unstable. (It is
sometimes held that Chu aided Zhou in a time of severe crisis under King Mu [r. –], but there are
good reasons to doubt this.) The Chu leader Xiong Qu reportedly adopted the royal title (wang) during the
Zhou king Yi’s time (–) and renounced it (“out of fear of Zhou”) during the reign of the unsavory
King Li (–); Shiji .–./.
12. “Bamboo annals” (current version)—Zhushu jinian, xia a.
13. “Danyang” may have been the designation for an area, rather than the name of a settlement.
14. The designation of Ying as capital occurred either some time late in the reign of King Wu (–) or (as
is usually assumed) at the outset of the reign of his successor, King Wen (–). However, it probably
existed and was used as a base of operations earlier.
15. The Danyang phase might be termed “archaic.” The outline of expansion given below suggests that the Ying
phase should encompass two stages: one (formative?) in which Chu was active in a fairly narrow geograph-
ical range and another (florescence?) during which it interacted with other cultural groups far and wide.
16. Only the barest outlines on any of these fronts can be given here.
17. For details, see Blakeley and (to a lesser extent) Blakeley .
18. Some scholars in this group posit a move from Zigui to Dangyang.
19. See Xu, chapter ; So, chapter ; Cook, chapter ; and Peters, chapter .
20. For various reasons (including the location of Xiasi) a Chu location in the lower Dan valley position is usu-
ally posited. The close Chu/Zhou ties in the era surrounding the conquest, however, make it quite possible
that Chu was at that time in the upper reaches of the Dan valley (in Shaanxi). The lower valley (in Henan),
however, is still close enough to the Zhou center. (Some Southern School scholars have conceded that Chu
was in the Dan valley in early Zhou times.)
21. See Shi Quan passim.
22. See Xu and Peters, chapters and , respectively. It is worth noting, too, that extensive investigation has failed
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 10 – 11
• 179 •
to turn up any royal tombs in the vicinity. Jinancheng could have been a subsidiary capital in later times, or
even a second “Ying” capital. (The Wu invasion of the Chu heartland in –, discussed below, might
have prompted a move southward from the more exposed Chu Huangcheng.) On the other hand, Jinan-
cheng need not have been a capital city: the agricultural base of the area—not to mention its favorable posi-
tion along trade routes—is sufficient to explain its considerable dimensions.
23. See Xu, chapter .
24. See Xu and Peters, chapters and , respectively. Finding royal tombs will be as important a test for this
proposal as for the southern ones—unless it turns out that kings were buried elsewhere (the Dan valley
homeland?).
25. Some Southern School analysts have nominated Jijiahu (the first Ying to others in this camp, it will be
recalled). It is highly improbable, however, that Western Zhou armies would have marched toward such a dis-
tant locale. Some within the Northern School have suggested one or another of the upland valleys west of
Yicheng (in Nanzhang County or thereabouts), but there is no adequate evidence to that effect.
26. Significantly, this conclusion has been reached by both Northern and Southern School scholars (respectively,
Shi Quan , – and Taniguchi , –). The identity of the starting point (Ying or a secondary
Danyang), however, remains open.
27. This was so for a campaign in (Blakeley ). Shi Quan (, –, –) argues that the
campaign was launched from the Dan valley. He Hao (, –) and others, however, take steps in the
direction of deflating this idea, and there is more that can be said along this line. A march against Sui (in
Handong, see below) in must have originated in Hubei.
28. Traditional locations of placenames associated with Xiong Qu (see n. ) would demand a Hubei locus for
Chu at that time. There are more convincing locations, but these would still allow either a northern Hubei
or southern Henan base of operations.
29. Neither the Shiji (./) nor the Zuozhuan (Xi , .) mentions the Han River. Of the texts that do, the
most reliable (and earliest) is the Old Text “Bamboo Annals,” but its history is so fraught with problems that
the reference to the Han it now contains could have been inserted long after the event.
30. On some of these, see Shaughnessy , , , –, . For discussions of the episode, see Wang
Mingge and Gong Weiying .
31. If Chu was situated north of the Han, there are at least two possibilities: () the Zhou force attacked Chu
and then crossed the Han (with some further objective in mind); () Chu troops retreated to below the Han
in the face of the Zhou assault.
32. A convenient summary of these struggles may be found in Maspero , –.
33. Zheng absorbed Xu’s original locale (on which, see Li Xueqin , –) rather early on; Chu there-
after moved Xu to several other locations.
34. As we shall see below, Chu eventually absorbed both Cai and Chen and moved its capital to the latter in .
On Cai and Chen materials, see Li Xueqin , –.
35. According to tradition, both Wu and Yue were centered below the Yangtze—Wu east of Lake Tai (southern
Jiangsu) and Yue on Hangzhou Bay (Zhejiang); see Tan Qixiang , . However, these may not have been
their original locales, and there is no doubt that in Eastern Zhou times both expanded well north of the
Yangtze (even beyond the Huai) and at times had their political centers there. On the archaeology of Wu
and Yue and the problem of their locations, see Li Xueqin , –; Peters , , –, –,
, –, –, and ; Xu, chapter ; and Peters, chapter .
The locations of a good many states alluded to herein pose problems. I utilize the views I consider to
be most reasonable and identify only some of the more controversial cases.
36. For four hundred years (with the exception of the Wu incursion of – discussed below) this functioned
as an effective barrier to enemy penetration from the north into the Chu core region.
37. At the time, the term probably referred only to the area below the Ru River, but I use it here to include as
far as the Ying.
38. About where the modern Wo River enters the Huai; see Tan Qixiang , –.
N o t e s t o Page s 12 – 14
• 180 •
39. This story can be periodized in a number of ways. The scheme employed here takes into account the objec-
tives of the present volume. Nor can the strategic considerations, intimately related to territorial expansion,
be treated in depth here.
40. Zuozhuan, Huan /., .
41. Chu may have attempted to extend its sway into Handong before this time. This would have affected Sui,
which had kinship ties with Zheng and Cai. These, however, were very remote, and Handong was so distant
from Zheng and Cai that strategic concerns are not a likely factor in their “fear of Chu.” It is possible that
Chu attacked Ruo (in the Dan valley) before , but Chu activity in the Dan valley, too, could hardly have
been of immediate concern to Zheng and (even more so) Cai. Tang and Liao also may have been pressured
by Chu before . (Liao was in the extreme southeast corner of the Nanyang Basin. Tradition assigns Tang
to a nearby site [Li Xueqin , ; Tan Qixiang , ], but it was somewhat farther north; see Shi Quan
, –.) He Hao (, –) suggests that there were also moves against Shen and Lü (both near
the center of the basin) by that time. The fact that the current Chu ruler (Wu) adopted the royal title (wang)
may have been another factor, although exactly when this took place is not entirely clear and (according to
one tradition) dated to slightly later. A recent discussion of the matter is by Shen Rusong ().
42. Sui is widely considered to be the Zeng of the Leigudun Tomb (see Xu, chapter ; So, chapter ; and Cook,
chapter ), although not all are as yet convinced of this equation. Whether this Handong Zeng was in any
way related to a Zeng in the Nanyang Basin is another unresolved issue. During the assault on Yun (), Liao
(see n. ), Zhou (see n. ), Er, and Zhen (see n. and Blakeley ) were also involved.
43. Luo was situated in the Yicheng Plain (north of Chu Huangcheng); LuRong was on the edge of the Yicheng
Plain, near Luo. Tradition assigns Jiao to a site near the Hubei/Shaanxi border, on the northern bank of the
Han (see Tan Qixiang , ), but it was surely farther downstream and south of the river.
44. Deng was near the banks of the Han (just north of modern Xiangfan), not (as long assumed) farther north
(in Dengzhou). See Shi Quan , –, and Li Xueqin , .
45. It is this that lends considerable support to the Northern School view on the location of Chu at this time,
because its proposals are far closer to the targets of these actions than the Southern School alternatives. Above
all, it is highly improbable that attacks on Jiao (n. ) and Ruo (n. ) were launched from the banks of the
Yangtze.
46. On Quan, see Shi Quan , , n. ; on Ran, see He Hao , –.
47. Zhou may have been here (see Shi Quan , ); it could hardly have been where tradition assigned it
(on the Yangtze, east of Jiangling). In early times, there probably was a Yan state in the Yicheng plain, but by
the time we read of it, its memory survived only in placenames. Kui (usually assigned to Zigui, along the
Yangtze; Tan Qixiang , ) also may have been situated in this plain (see Shi Quan , ). (Eventu-
ally, Ruo was moved from the Dan valley to south of the Yicheng plain.)
48. Gu (just west of the Bend) and Jiao (see n. ). Jun (farther upstream) and the upland groups retained their
independence, although some “lands of the Pu” (perhaps in the foothills) were taken over by Chu in this
time frame.
49. Logic would suggest that the western portions of Handong (Yun, Er, and Zhen) were incorporated at this
time or not too long thereafter. In northern Handong, Sui remained at least nominally independent well into
Warring States times. (The fate of Li or Lai, a small state northwest of Sui, is unknown). He Hao (,
–) argues that there was also a Huang state in Handong (different from a Huai valley state of the same
name).
50. Situated there was a string of small polities: Bai, Fang, Dao, Dun, Xiang, Shenn, and Hu. In the western
extreme of Fangcheng Wai was the territory of the state of Ying, but it is usually felt that it had been
destroyed earlier by Zheng.
51. Xi was situated on the north bank of the Upper Huai; on the area, see Li Xueqin , –.
52. See Li Xueqin , –. Inscribed Lü bronzes (ibid., ) are taken by some (see He Hao , ) as
evidence that it survived for some time thereafter. However, even if correctly dated, the locale in which these
were found raises the possibility that Lü remnants moved eastward to the Huai valley. (Toponyms in the
N o t e s t o Page 14
• 181 •
Upper Huai suggest a similar fate for the Shen elite.) The Nanyang Basin also may have been home to a
Zeng state (see n. ); but if so, it may have disappeared before Chu penetrated the basin.
53. On the locations of Tang and Liao, see n. .
54. The high points in this were the battles of Bi and Yanling and the accomodation with Jin, mentioned
below.
55. The fates of two other Upper Huai “Fan” states (one north of the river [see Xu Shaohua , –], the
other [“Fann”] to the south) are unknown; the names of these states are known largely from inscribed
bronzes. It is often held that several of the Fangcheng Wai states (Bai, Fang, Dao, and Hu) were incorporated
during this phase, but there are strong hints that they survived into the s.
It was in this time frame also (ca. ) that the Hanxi uplands and the more remote stretches of the Han
were taken: the state of Yong (and probably Jun), several tribal groups (the QunMan, BaiPu, and some Rong),
conceivably some Ba peoples, and the Hanzhong area (see n. ). The history of Ba/Chu relations virtually
requires that there were some Ba peoples along the Han in northwest Hubei. On the Ba and Chu inter-
actions, see Peters, chapter , and Sage , –.
56. He Hao (, , ) dates the fall of Jyang to the years –, but this seems a bit early.
57. Shu, Shujiu, Shuliao, Shuyong, Zong, and Huan (the latter is alluded to only in rather late sources). Archae-
ological remains in this region are surveyed in Li Xueqin , , and Peters , .
58. Opinion has long held that Chao was considerably farther south (see Tan Qixiang , ). He Hao (,
ff) makes a strong case, however, that it was northeast of Liu, thus not far below the Huai. He Hao (,
, ) dates the fall of Chao to –, but when all things are considered, this is rather late.
59. The relevant site was Zhongli. There are problems with both proposals concerning its location: downstream
from Zhoulai (Tan Qixiang , ) and upstream (Shi Quan , ).
60. The target is usually conceived of as the tradition-sanctioned Wu center south of the Yangtze (see n. ), but
this is highly improbable. One along the Lower Huai or in eastern Huainan (northern Jiangsu) makes more
sense.
61. In Huaibei, Chu also took over the state of Yang sometime between and (He Hao , –).
62. At that time, presumably to forestall the need to deal with assaults on two fronts, Chu carried out a massive
program of fortification and shifting around of the states in Fangcheng Wai and probably absorbed Bai, Dao,
Fang, and Hu (see n. ). In , Cai was moved southward (to XinCai), and Chu planted a client state in
its homeland (see Xu Shaohua ).
63. Wu, however, managed two victories along the Huai in . This evidently raised Chu fears of another Wu
thrust westward, because the Chu court once again abandoned Ying for safer quarters.
64. See n. .
65. Presumably in order to protect the western flanks of Fangcheng Wai, the semitribal Manshi (along the head-
waters of the Ru River) was absorbed in .
66. The standard view is that this was the end of Chen, but He Hao (, –) argues that both it and
(later) Cai were shifted to Hubei and survived there (at least nominally) for some time thereafter.
67. On archaeological remains of Cai in Shouxian, see Xu, chapter , and So, chapter .
68. The allusion (Shiji ./) is to an attack by the state of Shu. However, because the geographical core of
Shu was quite far to the west (in the Chengdu Plain) and because between it and Chu lay Ba peoples, it is
probable that “Shu” is an error for “Ba.” (It is relevant, also, that there had been two earlier Ba marches into
Chu territory in Hubei.)
69. This ancient Hanzhong could hardly have been equivalent to the Hanzhong prefecture of imperial times, in
the extreme upper portion of the valley. It was probably in the Hubei/Shaanxi border area. On Chu expan-
sion into Sichuan and the cultural results, see Peters, chapter , and Sage , –.
70. Sage , –.
71. The only setback in the east came in , when Song appropriated some Chu lands in Huaibei.
72. Before this, Ba (in the face of Chu pressures from the east) had shifted westward to the Chongqing area
(closer to Shu). On the Qin takeover and administration of Sichuan, see Sage , –, –.
N o t e s t o Page s 14 – 17
• 182 •
73. While the date of the destruction of Yue is debatable, Chu probably began to infiltrate the area after inflict-
ing defeats on it in the late fourth century (, ), and historical sources allude to the creation of a “Jiang-
dong” commandary ( jun) under King Huai (r. –).
74. It is usually assumed that Qianzhong was south of the Yangtze, but this is debatable.
75. The traditional view is that this was accomplished by a two-pronged advance, down both the Han and Yangtze
Rivers (see, for instance, Sage , –). That the Yangtze was involved, however, is uncertain from a
number of angles (including, of course, the possibility that Ying was not on the banks of the Yangtze).
76. On Chu remains there, see Li Xueqin , .
77. The dating of the destruction of Yue and the territorial implications are hotly debated questions.
78. Prior to this it had been moved within the Chu sphere and had been no more than a Chu client for some
time.
79. Juyang was more centrally positioned in the Chu domains of the time.
80. On the remains there, see Xu, chapter , and So, chapter ; Li Xueqin , , .
81. Convenient summaries of this topic are those of He Hao (, –) and Gu Tiefu (, –).
82. Not considered here are three very complex questions: () a persistent tradition that a scion of Chu (Zhuang
Qiao) established an outpost in Yunnan, which evolved into an independent state (see Peters, chapter ; Peters
, , , , –, –; Li Xueqin , –; Sage , –); () the idea that there
was a Chu presence of some sort in extreme western Sichuan, beyond Shu (see He Guangyue , –);
and () that there was a Chu outpost in northwest Jiangxi.
83. King Cheng (r. –) was supposedly commissioned by the Zhou king to put down a rebellion of the
YiYue “of the South”; Shiji ./. See, however, Blakeley, chapter .
84. The Shiji (./) relates that the great Chu statesman of Warring States times,Wu Qi (ca. ; see Blake-
ley, chapter ),“pacified the BaiYue in the South.” The Zhanguoce (Crump , ) alludes to Chu terri-
tory extending to Lake Dongting and Cangwu at this time.
85. See Blakeley, chapter .
86. The YiYue and BaiYue may well have been sub-Yangtze groups in Warring States times (although there was
a “BaiYue” group north of the Yangtze in earlier times; see Shi Quan ). Locating them, however, is ren-
dered difficult because they may have been widely distributed and because placing them must rely on very
late sources (ibid., –). “Dongting” is also mentioned. This unquestionably relates to the large lake in
northern Hunan that still bears the name, and it is perfectly reasonable that this region (not far distant from
the Chu remains of the Jiangling area) should have been within the Chu cultural (even political) sphere in
Warring States times. Another placename, Cangwu, is taken to relate to an area in the deep south of Hunan,
even extending into northern Guangdong.
87. The Zuozhuan (Xiang /.) has a Chu official stating that King Gong (r. –) pacified the ManYi
and launched a large-scale attack into Nanhai, thereby bringing these areas into the “Chinese” sphere of
things. Even beyond the question of the historicity of this discourse, it may be noted that “ManYi” is a
generic and geographically vague term; there were both Man and Yi north of the Yangtze, and the geo-
graphical significance of “Nanhai” is far from clear. (A parallel passage in the Guoyu [.b] mentions Nan-
Hai, but not the ManYi.)
Finally, the Zuozhuan (, Zhao /.) states that King Ping “attacked the Pu with a naval force.”
The use of naval forces against the Pu in lends some credence to their being situated south of the
Yangtze, but they need not have been very far below it, and some other river could have been involved. The
latter possibility is reinforced by the fact that Chu had relations with a Pu group as early as Western Zhou
times, and only a Southern School perspective on the location of Danyang would make it possible that these
Pu were in Jiangnan. In fact, the idea that the Pu of were in Jiangnan is based largely on events in
(in which the BaiPu figure). However, this involves the assumption that the Ying were at Jinancheng at the
time; and a careful reading of the episode demonstrates clearly that the BaiPu of that time were situated in
Hanxi, well north of the Yangtze. (It is possible, of course, that there were other Pu peoples in Jiangnan, or
that the BaiPu moved there between and .)
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 18 – 19
• 183 •
88. It is difficult, however, to say anything about the nature of the Chu presence. Something like frontier garri-
son posts would be the most logical supposition. (On Chu materials from Jiangnan, see Xu, chapter , and
Peters, chapter .)
N o t e s t o Page s 19 – 25
• 184 •
Zhao Gu (Wangshan Tomb , Jiangling; Hubeisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui ), had five steps and
the burial chamber was divided into three rooms; the tomb of a higher-ranking official (upper dafu), Zhao
Tuo (Baoshan Tomb , Jingmen; Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui ), had fourteen steps and five
rooms; the tomb of Pan Cheng (Tianxingguan Tomb , Jiangling; Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan
), a high official (upper qing), had fifteen steps and seven rooms; and, finally, the tomb of King You
(Shouxian, Anhui) had nine rooms (the number of steps is unclear).
17. On the latter (and their influences on bronzes), see Mackenzie a, –. In the tombs of the
Yutaishan ( Jiangling, Hubei) complex, yielded various lacquer and wooden objects, in all about ,
pieces. Liuchengqiao Tomb (Changsha, Hunan) held over lacquer pieces. The Wangshan tombs ( Jiang-
ling, Hubei) contained over lacquer pieces. In addition, Changtaiguan (Xinyang, Henan; Henansheng
wenwu yanjiusuo ), Tianxingguan Tomb ( Jiangling, Hubei), and Baoshan Tomb ( Jingmen, Hubei)
all contained a considerable number of lacquer and wooden ware. On the lacquered coffins from Leigudun
Tomb (state of Sui/Zeng, in Handong), see Thote .
18. Hunansheng bowuguan .
19. Hubeisheng bowuguan ; Anhuisheng wenwu gongzuodui fanchengxian wenhua guan . On the
Chu Wang Yinshen zhan, see Mackenzie a, .
20. Finer examples have emerged from these Hubei tombs:Yutaishan Tomb and Tomb and Tianxing-
guan Tomb ( Jiangling); Baoshan Tomb ( Jingmen).
21. Xiong Chuanxin .
22. In late Spring and Autumn to early Warring States Hunan tombs (Longdongpo, Changsha, and Deshan,
Changde), we find iron scrapers and adzes. Yangjiashan Tomb (Changsha) yielded a ding and an iron
scraper, along with a steel sword. In Tomb at Gangchang (Echeng, Hubei) was found a bronze ding with
iron legs (Hubeisheng Echengxian bowuguan ); Huang Zhanyue ; Wagner .
23. Hubeisheng bowuguan b.
24. Yang Minghong .
25. Chen Xianyi b.
26. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan .
27. Hubeisheng bowuguan c.
28. Yichang diqu bowuguan .
29. Hubeisheng bowuguan a.
30. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan .
31. Chu Huangcheng kaogu fajuedui a.
32. Zhongguo kaoguxue nianjian , .
33. Wang Shancai and Zhu Dejun .
34. Jingmenshi bowuguan .
35. Jingmenshi bowuguan .
36. Beijing b.
37. Hubei Jingzhou diqu bowuguan .
38. Jianglingxian wenwu gongzuozu .
39. Hubeisheng bowuguan . The tombs in the Jiangling area are surveyed in Guo Dewei .
40. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan .
41. Hubeisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui .
42. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan ; for Mashan, see Beijing .
43. Hubeisheng Yichang diqu bowuguan .
44. For a short notice on the discovery, see Zhang Yinwu and Li Fuxin . Excavations (as yet unpublished)
have been made by Wuhan University.
45. Zhongguo kaoguxue nianjian, : . The chariot pit here is the largest and earliest so far found in Hubei.
It suggests that there is an important elite tomb nearby, and its proximity to Chu Huangcheng lends some
weight to the Northern hypothesis on the location of Ying.
N o t e s t o Page s 25 – 2 7
• 185 •
46. Chu Huangcheng kaogu fajuedui b. Further excavations made by Wuhan University have not yet been
reported.
47. See Zhang Xixian .
48. The Xixia and Nanyang sites are discussed in Han Weizhou .
49. Hubeisheng bowuguan b; Shi Quan : –.
50. Cao Guicen ; Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo : –.
51. Nanyang diqu wenwudui .
52. Cao Guicen a.
53. Wang Rulin .
54. Hubeisheng bowuguan .
55. Wuhan daxue Jing-Chu shidi yanjiushi .
56. Zhang Zedong .
57. Hubeisheng bowuguan (on tomb ); Hubeisheng bowuguan ; von Falkenhausen : -.
58. Dayexian bowuguan .
59. Dayexian bowuguan .
60. Echengxian bowuguan .
61. Zhu Zhi .
62. Cao Guicen .
63. Shang Jingxi .
64. Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo .
65. Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo .
66. Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo .
67. Ou Tansheng .
68. Yang Lüxuan .
69. Zan Hanqing .
70. Li Shaozeng .
71. Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo .
72. Henansheng Xinyang diqu wenguanhui .
73. Zhumadian diqu wenhuaju .
74. Henansheng Xinyang diqu wenguanhui .
75. Anhuisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui ; Anhuisheng wenwu kaogu yanjiusuo .
76. Anhuisheng Huailinxian wenguansuo .
77. Anhuisheng wenwu gongzuodui b.
78. Anhuisheng wenwu guanli weiyuanhui .
79. Li Jingran ; Shouxian bowuguan .
80. Jiangsusheng wenwu guanli weiyuanhui and Nanjing bowuguan , ; Wu Shanqing .
81. Anhuisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui .
82. Anhuisheng wenwu gongzuodui a;Yang Jiuxia .
83. Qianshanxian wenwu guanlisuo ; Qianshanxian wenguansuo .
84. Huaiyinshi bowuguan .
85. Suzhou bowuguan kaoguzu .
86. Li Ling and Liu Yu .
87. Zhang Zhixin .
88. Zhenjiangshi bowuguan .
89. Shaoxing wenwu guanli weiyuanhui .
90. Huang Xuanpei .
91. Hunansheng bowuguan .
92. Hunansheng wenguanhui .
93. On the latter areas see Zhang Zhongyi and Peng Qingye .
N o t e s t o Page s 2 7 – 2 8
• 186 •
94. Hunansheng bowuguan .
95. Chu wenhua yanjiuhui : –; Zhongguo kaoguxue nianjian : .
96. Hunansheng bowuguan .
97. Hunansheng bowuguan b and .
98. Hunansheng bowuguan b.
99. Zhongguo kexueyuan kaogu yanjiusuo ; Hunansheng bowuguan .
100. Hunansheng bowuguan .
101. Hunansheng bowuguan .
102. Peng Shifan .
103. Cao Guicen ; Henansheng wenwu yanjiusuo : –.
104. Mackenzie (a: ) notes that in Warring States times Chu cultural influence was greater on this region
(that of Zeng/Sui) than on that of Cai (in the East). Von Falkenhausen (: –) suggests that the
mechanism for such influence (here and elsewhere) may have been through gifts of goods (such as bells)
made in Chu workshops.
105. The close proximity of the Caowang Zuicheng settlement to the Daye mine suggests a close relationship
between the two; on these, see Dayexian bowuguan and Xia Nai .
106. Lutaishan (in Huangpi; Hubeisheng bowuguan a), Guoerchong (in Huanggang; Huangzhou gumu
fajuedui ), several in Echeng (Echengxian bowuguan ) and Daye (Xiong Yayun ; Chu wen-
hua yanjiuhui : –).
107. Cao Guicen .
108. For a general discussion, see Wu Xinghan .
109. Yin Difei and Luo Changming .
110. Anhui Fuyang diqu zhanlanguan wenbozu .
111. To which, it will be recalled from the previous chapter, Chu moved in .
112. Yang Zifan ; Liu Xinjian .
113. Mackenzie (a: –) seems to suggest (despite chronological difficulties on the basis of currently
available materials) that there may have been Wu influences on Chu bronzes as early as mid-Spring and
Autumn times.
114. For a survey of Chu cultural penetration into this area, see Liu Xin .
115. Gu Tiefu ; Gao Zhixi a and (for chronological revisions) a.
116. Hunansheng bowuguan ; Hunansheng bowuguan a.
117. Hunansheng bowuguan .
118. Hunansheng bowuguan .
119. Hunansheng bowuguan .
120. Hunansheng bowuguan .
121. He Jiejun . It should be noted that Chu-style artifacts are also found in the South in areas beyond the
geographical scope surveyed here (i.e., beyond the extent of the Chu political sphere); e.g., Sichuan
(Sichuansheng bowuguan ), Guangdong (Guangdongsheng bowuguan ), and Guangxi (Guangxi
Zhuangzu zizhiqu wenwu gongzuodui ). These materials may relate to Chu trade contacts and cul-
tural exchange, on which see Peters, chapter below.
N o t e s t o Page s 2 8 – 34
• 187 •
3. A preliminary report was published in Wenwu , : –; this is superseded by a detailed monograph,
Beijing a.
4. See Beijing a, – for a discussion of the date and occupants; a different interpretation is offered by
Li Xueqin (, ). The greater complexities of the problem are summarized in von Falkenhausen ,
–, esp. n. .
5. See Thorp , , n. .
6. See So for an early discussion of the characteristics of Chu bronze art.
7. For example, the bronzes from the Marquis of Zeng’s tomb in Suixian discussed below.
8. For a full report of the find, see Beijing .
9. See designs on painted coffins of accompanying burials (Tokyo , no. :–) and on lacquered wooden
shields and leather armour plates (ibid., nos. :–, and ).
10. The site was reported in Jianghan kaogu , : –; see Shu Zhimei , n. –, –.
11. Beijing .
12. Hubeisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui , –.
13. Beijing .
14. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , –. Six of the seven tomb chambers at Tianxingguan have
been plundered so that the published finds are only a small portion of what must have been an extensive
original tomb inventory.
15. Beijing . This tomb may date to as late as the early third century; see Xu, chapter .
16. Beijing b.
17. Beijing , colorplate :–, plates –.
18. Some of the silks, lacquers, and bamboo are illustrated in Beijing , colorplates –; the bronzes are illus-
trated in plates –.
19. See Beijing b, plates –; the most interesting examples are either inlaid, gilded, or representational in
content (ibid., colorplate ).
20. The more important bronzes from the find were exhibited in Beijing (see Beijing ); present locations
for the inscribed vessels, many of which are scattered in various Chinese museums, are indicated in Ma
Chengyuan et al. –, : –.
21. Beijing , plate . See also Wang Zhongshu , chap. , for a description of the status of the lacquer
industry during Han times.
22. Mackenzie ; also Wang Congli , –.
23. See Thote , –; also in the same volume, .
24. Sixteen accompanying graves and a large horse-and-chariot pit with six chariots and nineteen horses were
found at Xiasi, while Tomb at Leigudun contained twenty-one sacrificial burials in separate chambers of
the main tomb structure. Li Xueqin , –, discusses two other finds in Henan Province—Tomb
at Hougudui (reported in Wenwu , : –) and Tomb at Baishizidi (reported in Zhongyuan wenwu ,
: –)—as well as Tomb at Liuchengqiao in Changsha, Hunan Province (reported in Kaogu xuebao ,
: –), among his list of Chu burials and notes that they were also accompanied by human sacrifices.
25. The musical instruments found with the marquis in the east chamber include a small tambourine-like drum,
a five-stringed zhu and a ten-stringed qin and five se (all plucked instruments), and two sheng mouth organs
(Beijing , –; also von Falkenhausen , –, for a discussion of the significance of this phe-
nomenon).
26. Beijing , plate ; Hubeisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui , , fig. ; Beijing , plate ; Bei-
jing b, plate :–.
27. See Rawson .
28. Beijing a, plates –.
29. Beijing , colorplates and :–.
30. Beijing a, colorplate and plate .
31. Beijing , colorplates –, :–.
N o t e s t o Page s 34 – 39
• 188 •
32. A virtually identical vessel has also been recovered from Tomb at Wangshan (Beijing b, n. ). The
Baoshan vessel contained remains of chicken bones. Lacquering on the inside of a bronze food vessel was
clearly both decorative and functional, as the lacquer coating, like tin inside modern cooking and baking
utensils, would have prevented contamination of the food.
33. See Beijing , plates –; Beijing b, colorplate :– and p. , fig. ; Wen Fong , n. ;
William Watson , n. –, etc.
34. Mackenzie has argued that both textile and carved wood designs have influenced bronze designs of the same
period (see Mackenzie , , and b).
35. Yang Xiaoneng n.d., plates –.
36. See Bagley , –.
37. Evidence that the trend was kept alive during the Western Zhou is supplied by recent finds from Shaanxi
(Beijing , : ) and Shanxi Provinces (Beijing , n. ).
38. Beijing , plates and :, , ; and :–.
39. The painting has often deteriorated to the extent that many such details are not immediately obvious,
although close study and drawings have helped to recreate some of these figures for study (e.g., compare
figures illustrated in Beijing , colorplate and plates –, to drawings of them on p. ).
40. See others from the same tomb in Beijing , plates –, and from Yutaishan (Beijing , plate ) and
Baoshan (Beijing b, colorplate : and plate :, ). The Baoshan figures were also equipped with
wooden swords (ibid., –, figs. –).
41. None of Gu’s original works survived, of course, although what is believed to be close approximations of
his works are in the collection of the British Museum and the Freer Gallery of Art (see Lawton , –,
catalog ).
42. See Sukhu, chapter ; see also Hawkes and Mackenzie a, –.
43. See Major, chapter .
44. Beijing , plates –, or Tokyo , n. –. The Fuxi-Nügua element is discussed in detail by Guo
Dewei ().
45. Beijing , . For an account of the myth, see Bodde , –; see also Chantal Zheng .
46. See Li Ling, appendix. Scholarship on this very important manuscript is exhaustive, with the major contrib-
utors including both Asian (Li Xueqin, Jao Tsung-i, Li Ling, Hayashi Minao) and Western scholars (Noel
Barnard) alike (see Barnard and Fraser ). For a recent summary of the scholarship on the manuscript,
see Lawton, , –; the bibliography lists the key publications on the subject by the scholars cited.
47. Suixian Leigudun yihao mu kaogu fajuedui , , fig. ; Li Ling in Lawton , ; and Li Ling a.
48. The Xinzheng example is now in the National Historical Museum in Taibei. The Lijialou tomb was plun-
dered when it was opened in , and much of its contents are now dispersed. However, the majority of
the bronzes recovered were published before they were dispersed (see Sun Haibo ).
49. A second wooden pedestal with inserted antlers was found in a separate chamber together with other objects
of daily use. The relationship between the second object and the others in the same chamber is unclear.
50. The Chu tombs at Yutaishan yielded such figures in varying degrees of elaboration, one in each tomb
(see Beijing , –, –; plates and :–). With the exception of one, all were placed in the
head chamber of the grave. Interestingly, the large Tomb at Baoshan is the only major Chu burial that did
not have such a figure inside.
51. Beijing , plate ; Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , plate :. Similar examples, with or
without antlers and in various states of preservation, abound from Chu tombs (e.g., Beijing , plate ).
Like the tomb figures, usually only one bird-tiger drumstand is found in a grave, and only the larger or richer
graves of higher-ranking individuals would yield them.
52. Beijing , colorplate :–; :.
53. William Watson , –; Thote , –. Bird-snake combinations antedating much of the Chu rep-
resentations discussed here have been found among artifacts recovered from sites in Shandong Province, sug-
gesting that the origin of that combination may actually lie farther east (see Shandongsheng kaogu yanjiusuo
N o t e s t o Page s 39 – 4 6
• 189 •
, plate :; and Shandongsheng Jiningshi wenwu guanliju , , fig. ., plate :; plate :, and
plate :). Also, bronze vessels with bird-snake and shamanistic scenes have been recovered from sites in
Henan, traditionally outside the realm of Chu control or influence (Weber , figs. –).
54. See Zhang Zhengming , –.
N o t e s t o Page s 47 – 53
• 190 •
ent vein, Zhu Junming () has argued that “Xiong” actually was not a native designation, but rather a
pejorative one applied by Qin writers (in Warring States times). This would require that the Shiji Chu
genealogy stemmed from a Qin source (a possibility, given the Burning of the Books in , under the Qin
dynasty). However, it ignores that one Chu king has a “Xiong” designation in the Zuozhuan (Zhao /.;
Zuozhuan references are to the edition) and, more tellingly, that there are several such allusions in
bronze inscriptions (at least as currently understood; see Cook , –, –).
18. Creel (, , n. ) writes that “descendants in the direct line . . . from the founder of a hsing [xing] had
no shih [shi] ‘surname,’ but only the hsing.” I would assiduously avoid the word “surname” for early China,
but the point being made is valid: the main lineage of a territorial state (e.g., Chu) had no discrete designa-
tion (shi; i.e., lineage name). These were adopted only by collateral lineages (to distinguish them from the
main line).
19. This would require linguistic practice at variance with the Central Plains (where the rulership title was in
the post position). The connection with wine sacrifice derives from the graph readings cited in n. .
20. This is usually seen as a “usurpation” of a Zhou prerogative, but such a view is essentially an expression of
the Northern Bias (or the “idealization” tendency of late Zhou times). In Western Zhou times the title was
not unique to the Zhou, and other “peripheral” states (only marginally tied to the Zhou scheme of things),
such as Wu and Yue, also employed it from early times (seemingly throughout their existence).
21. This function has been suggested, for instance, for the office of Moao (see below and n. , ). Ao was prob-
ably equivalent to yin.
22. See, for instance, Liu Xinfang , –. Since graphs preceding “Ao” were in a number of cases demon-
strably toponymns, it has been suggested that “X Ao” means “the Ao (-type leader) interred at X.”
23. On the subject, see He Hao and Zhang Jun , Liang Zhongshi , and Tang Jiahong .
24. Zuozhuan, Wen /..
25. Zuozhuan, Zhao /..
26. The latter follows hard on the heels of the account of King Gong’s divination concerning an heir (discussed
below). This reinforces the fact that it relates to unconventional successions.
27. Why this would be the case is not immediately apparent, but perhaps the idea was to insist that when all sons
were candidates, the one who would be least likely to be involved in the struggle (i.e., the youngest) should
succeed. A related factor may have been that succession by the youngest could still leave his elders as the true
wielders of power.
28. Zuozhuan, Zhao /.–.. (All such passages herein are rather free paraphrases.)
29. I take this clause literally (and thereby presume the Ba woman below to have been a concubine). Com-
mentators tend to take the phrases more figuratively, as alluding to the lack of a legitimate heir (see below),
and then argue whether the Ba woman was consort or a concubine.
30. Gongzi Bi, who was on the throne for a few days in , during the rebellion against King Ling. King Ping
maneuvered his death.
31. Gongzi Heigong, who was to be named prime minister in (under the same conditions and with the same
results as Gongzi Bi).
32. There is no indication of his position at court at this juncture. Perhaps he was a tutor.
33. He was later to oppose King Ling, aid King Ping in his rise to power, and serve as prime minister under the
latter.
34. This foretells what was to happen after King Gong’s death, when the youngest son (chosen by the spirits)
was set aside (in favor of the eldest).
35. Or, to be more precise, what later commentators assumed to be the Zhou tradition. I am not aware, how-
ever, that it has been shown unequivocally that this included a strict rule of seniority.
36. This would make it possible for succession to go to a junior candidate and may be what prompted a (later
or northern) misconception that sucession by the youngest was a common practice (or the set rule) in Chu.
37. The basic meaning of “X shi” was “lineage [called] X.” Thus when applied to an individual (always a lineage
head), it conflated him with the lineage in its entirety.
N o t e s t o Page s 53 – 55
• 191 •
38. On these points, see Creel , , n. ; , n. .
39. Commentators have maintained that some of the Chu lineage names derived from those of their estates. The
evidence, however, is not conclusive. In any case, there is no evidence that their lands were either extensive
or administratively autonomous (see Blakeley and Xu forthcoming). (The absence of estates undoubtedly
contributed to the relatively high level of centralization in Chu noted below).
40. If “Moao” was a state post (see below), it was the only major exception. (Some ritual roles may have been
passed down hereditarily [see Zhang Jun a, , n. ], and there seems to have been a minor tendency
toward hereditary tenure in local posts; see Blakeley and Xu forthcoming.)
41. Thatcher –, –.
42. The lack of estates in the countryside and the absence of hereditary office may have made Chu lineages
somewhat more intensely concerned with obtaining and maintaining power and influence at court than their
counterparts elsewhere.
43. See, for instance, the genealogical charts in Blakeley . The point has been made by Zhang Jun (a,
).
44. The lineage names of a number of individuals include “Xiong.” Given its connection with kings (see above),
it is quite probable that such lineages were segments of the royal clan. If so, the fact that such men are always
found in low-level posts suggests that these lineages originated very early, although there is no way to say
precisely when. (It could be, however, that these were lineages with roots in other Mi-xing states.)
45. There are problems, however, with this idea. Zhang Jun () has attempted to sort them out but without
definitive results.
46. It has long been assumed that the two graphs are interchangeable and that they thus referred to the same lin-
eage. There is some reason to doubt this, but the arguments offered to date fail to solve some difficulties.
47. It was long held that the progenitor was a son of Wu. Zhang Jun’s suggestion (, –) that he was
instead a brother of Wu has some merit.
48. Mao is probably a variant of ao, discussed above.
49. See Zhang Jun , – and Li Ling a.
50. This designation has occasioned much controversy (see Blakeley and Xu forthcoming), despite the fact that
early commentators (e.g., Du Yu, Zuozhuan, Zhao /.) tied a Shenyin figure genealogically to King
Zhuang.
51. See Wu Yufang b. On a shadowy Jing collateral lineage, see below.
52. Blakeley b, ; Zhang Jun a, –.
53. See Blakeley , a, b (p. for a summary).
54. We encounter about a dozen lineages (represented by only one or two members) concerning which there
is no hint of geographical origins.
55. For a survey of aliens in Chu in Spring and Autumn times, see Zhang Shenglin .
56. Seven Qi princes: Zuozhuan, Xi /.; Guan Xiu: Zuozhuan, Ai /..
57. Presuming that Song Mu was from the state of Song (Zuozhuan, Ding /.).
58. Bo Zhouli (Zuozhuan, Cheng /., Xiang /., Xiang /.) and perhaps Xi Wan (Zuozhuan,
Zhao /.), on whom see below.
59. Guan Dingfu: Zuozhuan, under Ai /., and presumably Guan Shefu (Guoyu .a), on whom see Xiao
Hanming .
60. Members of Shen lineage (e.g., Shen Hai: Zuozhuan, Zhao /.) and the Peng lineage: e.g., Peng Zhong-
shuang: Zuozhuan, under Ai /. (see n. ); Peng Yu, known from a bronze inscription. See Blakeley
and Xu forthcoming.
61. Xu Yan (Zuozhuan, Cheng /.) and, presumably,“Chu Xu Bo” (Zuozhuan, Xuan /.).
62. Zhen Yijiu (Spring and Autumn Xiang [Zuozhuan, .]; Zuozhuan, Zhao /.).
63. Zige (= Ran Dan): Zuozhuan, Xiang /.).
64. Deng Liao (Zuozhuan, Xiang /.).
N o t e s t o Page s 55 – 56
• 192 •
65. Cai Wei (Zuozhuan, Zhao /.), Chao Wu (Zuozhuan, Zhao /., etc.), and Fei Wuji (on whom see
below).
66. Dao Shuo (Zuozhuan, Huan /.), presumably from the small state of that name (in central Henan.)
67. There were four figures bearing the lineage-name Pan (most notably Pan Chong, tutor to King Mu; e.g.,
Zuozhuan, Wen /.-). If pan is a graphic variant of fan, the lineage probably originated in the state of
Fan (located in Huaibei), and this would explain the presence of shu (uncle) in the designations of two Pan
figures: Pan Wang (a.k.a. Shishu; Zuozhuan, Xuan /.,) and Pan Dang (a.k.a. Shu Dang; Zuozhuan,
Xuan /.).
68. Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui , vol. —for Ruo: (strip ); Deng: (strips , ), (strip
), (strip ), (strip ), (strip ), (strips , ); Cai: (strip ), (strip ),
– (strip ), (strip ), (strip ), (strip ); Song: (strip ), (strips , ),
(strip ), (strip ), (strips , ); Chen: (strip ), (strip ), (strip ), –
(strip ); Wu: (strip ); Zhou: (strips , , ), (strip ), (strips , ), (strip ),
(strip ), (strip ), (strips , , , ); Huang: (strip ), (strip ), (strip
), (strips , , ), (strips , , ), (strips , , , , ). (One gets the feel-
ing that these state names are functioning not as lineage names but as surnames in the sense that we under-
stand the “xing” from Han times on.)
69. Also, two military captives (Guan Dingfu [n. ] and Peng Zhongshuang [n. , ]) of early Spring and
Autumn times subsequently served Chu in important capacities.
70. On Chu central administration, see Liu Xianmei ; Xu Jun ; Zuo Yandong ; Thatcher –
and , –; Li Jin ; and Liu Yutang .
71. In modern times, Zhang Zhenze () suggested that it had charge of the statutes.
72. Tang Jiahong () and Cai Jingquan () have suggested that it was so closely association with the Qu
lineage that it, in effect, came to function as a designation for its lineage head. This, however, is unlikely, since
in the Baoshan material we find Moao of other lineages in a number of local administrations (e.g., Hubei-
sheng JingSha tielu kaogudui , vol. : , strip ).
73. For example, the office of lianyin appears in texts (e.g., Zuozhuan, Xuan /.) and aoyin in the Baoshan
materials (i.e., Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui , vol. : , strip ).
74. More than two dozen different “-yin” offices appear in the Baoshan materials, far more than are encountered
in the sources for Spring and Autumn times. About one-fourth appear to be central posts, the rest, local.
75. For example, Zuozhuan, Xuan /. and Cheng /..
76. See Zuozhuan, Zhuang /. and under Ai /..
77. See Wen Chongyi , –; Shu Zhimei and Wu Yongzhang ; Tang Mingli ; and especially Song
Gongwen , –.
78. This was the office of the occupant of Baoshan Tomb . See Weld, chapter .
79. Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui , vol. : e.g., , strip .
80. Ibid., , strip .
81. For example, Ibid., , strip .
82. Ibid., , strip .
83. For example, Ibid., , strip .
84. Presumably the same as Gongzheng.
85. See Yang Fanzhong and Zhu Maxin ; Creel , -. The subject is thoroughly reviewed in Blake-
ley and Xu forthcoming.
86. A supposedly earlier (sixth-century) case is highly suspect; see Blakeley and Xu forthcoming. He Hao has
been engaged in an extended analysis of the chronology and locations of Chu fiefs; see He Hao , ;
He Hao and Liu Binhui .
87. He Hao presumes that the considerable number of jun means that power was quite decentralized. He may,
however, be overly influenced by a passage in Han Feizi (SBBY ed., .a) complaining of the excess of
N o t e s t o Page s 56 – 57
• 193 •
fengjun in Chu, because this applies ony to the last (Eastern) phase of Chu history (the era of Huang Xie).
Both He Hao and Chen Wei (, –) presume that these jun were enfeoffed ( feng), but the latter
appropriately suggests that they were under significant central control, and therefore the possibility must be
considered that the jun were heads of jun (commanderies or prefectures) rather than the holders of fiefs. (It
may be significant, too, that much of the central government apparatus was mirrored in the structure of local
government.) See also Weld, chapter ; Peng Hao ; Luo Yunhuan b; and Chen Wei a, b.
88. Given the inadequacies of the sources, little can be discerned about the kings of Warring States times. The
only kings from that era on whom we have any meaningful information are those who reigned during the
period covered in some detail by the only quasi-historical Intrigues of the Warring States (Zhanguoce; see
Loewe , ). On that basis, King Huai (r. –) and his son, King Qingxiang (r. –), may have
exercised some degree of authority (although the former died a captive in Qin).
89. For a statistical analysis of lineage participation in court affairs, see Blakeley b.
90. This was Gongzi Yuan, who is discussed below.
91. Wang Yi, as quoted in Shiji jijie (Shiji ./). If the graph yuan is equivalent to wei (see above), the Wei
lineage also appears in the Baoshan materials. Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui , vol. : , strip ;
, strip ; , strip .
92. Wu Yufang (a) has suggested that it was in fact the Xiang lineage (of the great anti-Qin rebel leader,
Xiang Yu).
93. Wang Yi, as quoted in Shiji jijie (Shiji ./), defined it as being in charge of the three lineages men-
tioned above. If so, however, this would be a practice unique to Chu, there being no known corallary else-
where of several lineages being grouped together in this way.
94. See Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogu dui , vol. : –, strip ; , strip ; , strip ; , strip
; , strip ; , strip . This does not mean that there were no Qu figures at court, however, as
the Baoshan materials are overwhelmingly concerned with local matters.
95. See He Hao . The occupant of Wangshan Tomb , Jiangling, was also of the Zhao lineage.
96. Of the exceptions, one (Peng Zhongshuang, n. , ) was rather early (early seventh century) and the other
(Wu Qi, see below) rather late (in the early fourth century). I consider the evidence for two others pro-
posed by Song Gongwen (, –, –) to be shaky at best.
97. Other than his rise, resignation, and the episode recounted below, the Zuozhuan alludes to him at only three
points, all in a rather offhand manner. Elsewhere, he appears only in the Lunyu (n. ) and in a unique
(hence, suspect) episode in the Shuoyuan, and is mentioned in passing in the Qianfulun.
98. Zuozhuan, under Xuan /..
99. Lunyu, ..
100. See the genealogical chart in Blakeley b, –. (The complex nature of the Dou lineage represented
there, however, reflects traditional understanding and may not be entirely accurate.)
101. Note that while Ziwen’s mother (Bobi’s wife) is the daughter of a lord, the same is not claimed of Ruo Ao’s
wife (the mother of the next ruler, Xiao Ao).
102. In this scenario, the fall of the Ruo Ao lineages in (see above) could represent the main lineage (and its
kings) emerging from under a genealogical cloud that had kept it at a disadvantage vis-à–vis the Dou lineage.
103. Zuozhuan, Xuan /.–..
104. See Blakeley b, –.
105. Shiji .–./; translated in Nienhauser , – passim.
106. Moreover, the trope of “thrice serving” is found in the Lunyu (.) instead in connection with Ziwen (for
whom there is absolutely no independent evidence of such a career pattern).
107. On problems with the historicity of the Sunshu Ao stories, see Nienhauser , –, and Gu Tiefu
, –.
108. Another source of confusion concerning the role of kings in Chu (in the recent literature) is the assump-
tion that the relatively high degree of centralization there necessarily translated specifically into royal
authority. This is a false assumption.
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 57 – 61
• 194 •
109. As will be seen below, however, Ping was evidently not the most forceful of personalities.
110. According to discourses recorded in both the Zuozhuan (Zhao /.–.) and the Shiji (./),
Ling considered requesting a gift of tripods from the Zhou king. This is sometimes taken as an allusion to
the “nine ding” that (at least in later imagination) served as the symbol of universal sovereignty (supposedly
coveted also by King Zhuang; see below). Even if historically realiable (by no means a certainty), the context
of the episode really suggests a less imposing expectation. Nevertheless, when the totality of Ling’s actions
and personality are taken into account, it would not be surprising if he hoped to supplant the Zhou kings.
111. Shiji ./. For uncritical treatments of King Cheng, see Peng Mingzhe and Wei Chang .
112. If, however, the YiYue were located in Jiangnan, the absence of that segment of the episode from the
Zuozhuan is not surprising, as it alludes very little to that region (see Blakeley, chapter ).
113. For example, by Wei Chang () and Zhao Hua ().
114. Zuozhuan, Xuan /.–..
115. According to the Shiji variants (and other sources that treat the tripods).
116. Zuozhuan, Xuan /.–.. Variants appear in Shiji ./ and .–./.
117. See Gu Tiefu , –. (For an uncritical treatment of the subject, see Zhao Zhongwen .)
118. Shiji .–/.
119. One of the few Chinese scholars to question the historicity of the episode (echoed in a number of other
works) is Tan Qixun ().
120. He had played an ambiguous role in a military campaign in (i.e., at the end of his first three years on
the throne) and may have been involved behind the scenes in power struggles leading up to the episode
(see Blakeley b, –).
121. A fully legitimate Hegemon was recognized as such (at least as a formality) by the Zhou king, which was
not the case with Zhuang of Chu. On the realities of the hegemonies, see Rosen and Liu Pujiang
.
122. An earlier () defeat by Jin and its allies at Chengpu did deflect Chu efforts at territorial acquisition away
from the “core” states of the Yellow River. Nevertheless, thereafter (and throughout Zhuang’s reign) Chu
and Jin continued to struggle for the allegiance of the pettier states, and even a major Chu victory (at the
Battle of Bi) did not really change this.
123. The allusions to him, scattered in Warring States and Han texts, generally serve the ideological purposes of
the authors/compilers. They are, however, rather consistent in their treatment of him. Studies of Wu Qi
include Guo Moruo , He Chongen , Li Hengmei , Okada , Sun Kaitai , and Wei
Chang . For a translation of the Shiji biography of him and a discussion of problems with it, see
Goodrich –.
124. A number of its members appear in the record, beginning with Wu She’s grandfather, Can (e.g., Zuozhuan,
Xuan /.).
125. Zuozhuan, Zhao /., Zhao /., Zhao /., Zhao /.–, Zhao /.–., –.
The only study of the material is that of Matsumoto .
126. See Blakeley b, .
127. For a typically uncritical treatment of the material, see Wang Weiping ; for an excellent evaluation of
it, see Johnson .
128. The same theme lies at the core of the Qu Yuan saga; see Sukhu, chapter .
129. Other factors, of course, must have been at work. In terms of north-south competition, for instance, the wet-
field agriculture of most of the Chu area (in contrast to the dry-field type of the Yellow River plain) surely
was an important one. For a step in the direction to elucidating this important topic, see Pu Shipei .
5. The Ideology of the Chu Ruling Class: Ritual Rhetoric and Bronze Inscriptions
1. This famous tale was first narrated in the Zuozhuan, Xuan ( ); a slightly abbreviated version appears
in the Shiji, “Chu Shujia” ; and a slightly variant version of the Zuozhuan narration is preserved in the
Chushi taowu . See also Blakeley b.
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 61 – 67
• 195 •
2. For the nine sacred caldrons see K. C. Chang , –. The Chu king Ling’s rationale for expecting the
Zhou to hand the nine sacred caldrons over to him was that his ancestors had been slighted in earlier Zhou
gift-giving rituals. Now that Chu was more powerful, the Zhou should be willing to give the most treasured
gift (Zuozhuan, Zhao ).
3. Blakeley, chapter .
4. Guoyu, ed.,“Chuyu, xia,” –.
5. Ibid.
6. Cook . Guan Shefu noted that wushi were employed by a household for lineage mortuary feasts. Guoyu,
ed.,“Chuyu, Xia,” –.
7. Kane –; Cook b, .
8. See Stanley Tambiah’s discussion of how words, especially those summarizing myth, act through recitation
to invoke spirits (Tambiah , especially –).
9. Savage interprets these same inscriptions in a Confucian light, insisting on the late reading of de as
“virtue,” although he is certainly correct in interpreting this virtue as associated with the “royal model
emulation” of Kings Wen and Wu. For slightly different readings, see Cook , –; for their role in
a potlatch feast, see Cook b, .
10. For the use of ming ‘luminous’ as a signifier of matters associated with the dead, see Maspero . The Shang
and early Zhou graph read later as de was initially a verb associated with “visiting” border peoples (Serruys
, ). See Cook ; see also Du Naisong and Jao Tsung-yi,“Some Further Observations” (Bar-
nard , –).“Visiting” border peoples was commonly combined with “punishing” (fa or zheng) them.
11. Cook .
12. Archaeological evidence suggests that this practice may have been imported from the south in the middle of
the Western Zhou period (von Falkenhausen , –).
13. Von Falkenhausen , –.
14. The feast is best described in the Shijing song, “Chuci” (Mao no. ), translated by Waley (, –)
and discussed by von Falkenhausen (, –). Many of the songs preserved in this collection describe
the clan feast; see Waley’s sections:“The Clan Feast,”“Sacrifice,” and “Music and Dancing.” See also Childs-
Johnson , Cook b, and Cook . For a description of the foods, see K. C. Chang b.
15. Xu Zhongshu ; Cook , –.
16. These date from the sixth to fifth centuries and belong to Jin in the northwest, Qi in the northeast, and Cai
in the central southern region. The Son of Heaven (tianzi) by this time was reduced to a symbolic repre-
sentative of the old order; as such, he may have been viewed as having religious or magical powers (see Ma
Chengyuan et al. –, inscription nos. , , –).
17. Rubbings and a transcription are found in Henansheng Danjiangkuqu wenwu fajue dui , , –; Ma
Chengyuan et al. –, no. ; von Falkenhausen , –; Mattos ; Cook , –,
–.
18. Li Xueqin , –. For discussions on the identity of the tomb occupant, see Li Ling and ;
Wu Shiqian ; Henansheng Danjiangkuqu wenwu fajue dui , ; Chen Wei , –. Weizi
Ping’s kinship rank is incised on the bronze “Chu Shuzhisun,”“Grandson (or descendant) of a younger male
sibling of the royal Chu family.” It is possible Ping and Wu were second cousins by the marriage of one of
Wu’s granduncles to a Wei lineage woman. His father was also a lingyin, Sunshu Ao (Song Gongwen ,
; see n. below). Chu elite often had bronzes of earlier date buried with them in their tombs. In the
Heshangling section of the Xichuan burial ground, for example, six inscribed shengding belonging to Ke
Huang (of the Dou lineage, one the the few survivors of the Ruo Ao massacre in ; see Blakeley, chapter
) were discovered in Tomb , dating to either or (Qiu Shi ).
19. For details of Wu’s career as lingyin, see Song Gongwen : -.
20. Cattle bone chips were found in the vessels. The vessel was referred to as shangyi caiding; both terms refer to
a kind of meat sacrifice (Cook , –, –, ). For a discussion of which types of ding are used
with which type and cut of sacrificial animal, see Li Ling .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 67 – 71
• 196 •
21. See the Zuozhuan, Xuan ( ), where Jin officers discuss the strength of Chu and the role of Wei Ao
as the chief steward (cai) in selecting the “Statutes of Command” (lingdian) by which to order the army. Wei
Ao, also known as Sunshu Ao and Wei Ailie, was also a lingyin (see Song Gongwen , ; , ).
22. Shijing, Mao ,“Shi Wan,” trans. by Waley , nos. , .
23. Zuozhuan, Xuan .
24. Zuozhuan, Xiang .
25. Von Falkenhausen , (based on earlier discussions of intertextuality by Sun Qikang and Liu
Xiang ). The Wangsun Gao zhong was found in the same tomb as the Wangzi Wu ding (M at Xichuan,
Henan). Von Falkenhausen , , notes that the rhetoric of this inscription reveals a “purposeful manip-
ulation of current ritual language for ideological/ritual ends.” The Wangsun Yizhe zhong was found in the
hills outside of Yichang, Hubei, in and is dated to based on the identification of Yizhe as
Zhuishui, the Lingyin Zinan. Zinan became lingyin after Zigeng because Weizi Ping apparently refused the
offer (Li Xueqin ; Sun Qikang ; Liu Xiang ; Cook , –; Ma Chengyuan et al.,
–, no. ).
26. Cook .
27. See the Qin Wu Gong bells, the Qin Gong gui, and the Jin Jiang ding (Ma Chengyuan et al. –, nos.
–, ).
28. Fanyang was probably the name of the southern bronze foundry, possibly located north of the Ru River in
Henan (Li Xueqin , ; Luoyang bowuguan , ). The closest ancient mining sites discovered thus
far are in southeastern Hubei (Li Xueqin , –). Another, in northwestern Jiangxi, was also most
likely active at that time. A sword inscribed with the words “the bronze of Fanyang” was found in a Warring
States tomb in Luoyang (Luoyang bowuguan ). It was found with a string of pearls and a lacquer sheath;
see Peters, chapter .
29. See the Jin Gong dian (– ), the Xu Wangzi Tong zhong (late Spring and Autumn), and the Cai Hou
vessels (– ). Curiously, the Yun’er zhong, a Xu bell inscription believed to be from the same scribal
hand as the Wangzi Wu, Wangsun Gao, and Wangsun Yizhe bells, does not have meng for ming. The Cai
inscriptions reflect fifth-century changes; they do not refer to mengsi but to a related rite, the meng changdi
‘the luminous/covenant autumnal sacrificial rite.’ The autumnal rite (chang) was also mentioned in late War-
ring States Chu inscriptions. In Western Zhou times, chang was a “tasting” ritual that took place in the king’s
private quarters. There is no evidence of it being originally associated with Autumn (Liu Yu , ’).
The term di can be traced back to Shang and early Western Zhou usage, when it referred to a one of sev-
eral rites involving a commemorative feast to the High God in honor of the patrilinial ancestors (Shima
; Liu Yu ). The Shuyin bo inscription, Qi bell, dated to around – , referred to the ritual
as mengxu.
30. Zuozhuan, Cheng .
31. Zuozhuan, Cheng . The Song ruler acted as mediator. The actual text of the covenant was agreed upon
outside the west gate of the Song capital. The feasting simply acted to seal the agreement in the presence of
the ancestral spirits. For the proper etiquette of feasts, see Yang Kuan .
32. Zuozhuan, Cheng .
33. Zuozhuan, Xi , ; Cheng ; Zhao . Most of the odes sung can be found in the Shijing collection.
34. Zuozhuan, Zhao .
35. Zuozhuan, Ai .
36. Li Xueqin , –.
37. For a detailed analysis of the Zeng Hou Yi bell inscriptions as they relate to early musical theory, see von
Falkenhausen , –.
38. Hubeisheng bowuguan .
39. Chang Yuzhi ; Cook , –, –.
40. Ikeda , –.
41. Qing accounts of an ancient city of Xiyang locate it north of Suixian in southern Henan (see Cook ,
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 71 – 74
• 197 •
–), but it must have been closer to Anlu, the site outside of Suixian where the two bells were found
during the Northern Song period.
42. Cook . For traveling in the Shang, see Keightley b, –; for the movements of the king as a
dating device, see Shaughnessy , –. For an example of a feast held outside a Zhou sacred center, see
the Chang Xin he or the later E Hou Yufang ding (Ma Chengyuan et al. –, nos. and ).
43. The inscription has left out the word for “to treasure” (bao, often replaced with the homophonous word bao
‘preserve’), leaving the nonsensical:“may he eternally, it, use to present sacrificial offerings.” If the inscription
was read out loud, however, the homophones “eternal” (yong) and “use” (yong) could function as loans for
each other, producing the phrase “may he use it and eternally present sacrifices.” Both expressions “use it”
(yong zhi) and “eternally present offerings [in the lineage mortuary feast]” (yong xiang) evolved out of Western
Zhou usage and were in common use later. (There are many examples from the Upper Huai River region;
see Ma Chengyuan et al. –, nos. , , , , , ). A Spring and Autumn period Zeng
inscription considered to be from a different Zeng state in Shandong has yong bao yong zhi xiang (Ma Cheng-
yuan et al –, no. ). The Cai vessels, dating to , found in Shouxian, Anhui, share the Zeng
variant writing of zuo with the semantic “speech” element (Ma Chengyuan et al., –, nos. –).
The graph for “it” (zhi) appears with a number of different significs, such as the mouth or dagger. These
are found in the sense of “it” in bronzes entombed with Zeng Hou Yi and on a Cai dagger-axe. When the
graph should be read as zhi is obvious not only from the syntax of the phrase but from the formulaic nature
of the phrase. The phrase has evolved from Western Zhou style blessings (Cook , –). The Cai
Gongzi Jia ge has, in the same style of script as the Zeng bronzes,“[Made] for the use of Cai Gongzi” (Ma
Chengyuan et al. –, no. ). Zeng bells also use the variant, but for another homophone (see Ma
Chengyuan et al. –, nos. ff). Luo Yunhuan () notes that the epigraphical styles of the Chu
Yin Zhang zhong and bo bells do not match. He suspects that the bo inscription was by a Chu scribe and the
zhong inscription, like the Zeng Hou Yi inscriptions, was by a Zeng scribe (who perhaps copied from the
Chu bell).
44. Both weapons are now in the Palace Museum of Beijing. For a photo of the sword, see Liu Jie , . Rub-
bings are available in Ma Chengyuan et al. –, nos. –.
45. Yin was a royal Chu surname. It corresponded phonetically to the surname Xiong found in the received
texts. (For a summary of past discussions, see Cook , .)
46. Liu Binhui (, ) dates the sword to the early years of King Hui’s reign. A similar formula to “use it on
travels; use it on military expeditions” was used on southeastern Spring and Autumn period ritual vessels
from Chen and Xu. See Ma Chengyuan et al. –, nos. , .
47. For other bird-script examples, see Rong Geng , especially the inlaid dagger-axes discovered in Shou-
xian, Anhui (items and ). For a discussion of the Chu blade, see ( in reprint) and for the photo,
see plate ( in reprint). Dong Zuobin () claimed that bird script derived from the ornate Shang script
found especially in clan signs. Ma Guoquan () explained that bird script did not evolve directly from the
Shang. It was popular in the southeastern inscriptions of the late Spring and Autumn period through the
Warring States period. It was also popular during the first half of the Han period. Ma Guoquan speculated
that the interest in “bird,”“insect,” and “fish” scripts prevalent in the south and southeastern states of Wu,Yue,
Song, Cai, and Chu may have been related to religious beliefs that derived ultimately from the Shang. The
Chu blade inscription, he claims, is composed of both bird and insect script ().
48. Li Xueqin , ; Cook , –.
49. See Zhu Dexi ; Zhu Dexi and Qiu Xigui ; Hao Benxing ; He Linyi ; and Huang Xiquan
. These authors overlooked a food-service caldron made by a royal descendant of the Wu house in the
Spring and Autumn period with terminology similar to the Chu Warring States inscriptions (see Ma Cheng-
yuan et al. –, no. ). It seems that the early Wu scribes and these later scribes shared a common
ritual tradition. For further discussion, see Cook .
50. Li Xueqin , .
51. There may have been others, but the excavation site has been destroyed. The vessels and some weapons, now
N o t e s t o Page s 74 – 75
• 198 •
disintegrated, were found in a dike (Li Ling and Liu Yu , –). They were on display at the Jiang-
susheng bowuguan in Nanjing in . Only the jian and dou vessels are inscribed. The inscriptions are
incised on preexisiting vessels, as was typical of the late Warring States period.
52. See Li Ling and Liu Yu ; He Linyi ; Liu Binhui , ; He Hao ; and Cook , –,
–.
53. Some of the rhetoric was preserved in a few short Warring States inscriptions from the state of Qi and on
the lengthy late Warring States inscriptions of Zhongshan. The former retain bits of the sixth-century rhet-
oric and the latter were obviously influenced by contemporary philosophical and storytelling traditions. It is
very likely that evidence from other states was destroyed during the Warring States period. It was common
practice to cast vessels from the metals captured from one’s enemies (e.g., see the late Warring States Chu
inscription stating that fact, Ma Chengyuan et al. –, no. ).
54. Li Ling .
N o t e s t o Page s 75 – 78
• 199 •
6. Trans. Lau , –.
7. Zuozhuan, Xuan : –, ch. .b–.a.
8. For example, dian appears in the ode “Tang,” in the Shijing, where King Wen of Zhou chastizes the latter-
day Shang rulers for abandoning Shang’s ancient virtue:
Yin does not use the old (ways); but though there are no old and perfected men (sui
wu lao cheng ren) there still are the statutes and the [penal] laws (shang you dian xing);
you have not listened to them; the great appointment therefore is tumbling down.
(Karlgren a, )
Here the poet refers to written punishment texts, dian xing, as a source of authority that can be a substitute
for authoritative humans.
9. Creel , –. See also Creel , .
10. Zhanguoce .a; Crump , .
11. Zhanguoce .b; translation modified from Crump , . As elsewhere, the romanization has here been
changed to pinyin. Peters makes note of this anecdote in her Ph.D. dissertation (Peters , –). In a
recent commentary on the passage, apparently written before the publication of the Baoshan discoveries, Xu
Jun reads the name of this legal text as feng ci zhi dian, or the “Phoenix Laws,” and links it to an ancestral Chu
belief in the phoenix as a protective spirit. Xu Jun , –. Crump solves the puzzle of the “Pecking
Order Statutes” by elision, translating the phrase as simply “the books of law.”
12. As we shall see below, the term dian does appear in the legal documents from Shao Tuo’s grave, where it
means population registers, lists of residents grouped by household (shi) and kept in local government
archives (yufu), or lists of workers assigned to various officers.
13. These “laws” are cited in Peng Hao , –.
14. Zuozhuan, Zhao : –, ch. .b–.a.
15. The harboring of fugitives and criminals was a common element in Eastern Zhou formulaic depictions of
evil rulers, as Wu Yu notes later in the same passage. Perhaps this focus can be traced to the enforcement
problem faced by early states in a period when lawbreakers could get to the next jurisdiction in only a few
hours.
16. For example, there is a group of Zhou architectural bronzes that include the figure of a one-legged door-
keeper standing by a temple or palace gate. A recent find in Shanxi is a wheeled animal cart, like a zoo on
wheels, complete with a door on hinges guarded by a one-legged keeper (see Rogers , plate ).
17. Kong Yingda, Tang author of the shu commentary on the Zuozhuan, says he does not know what the name
of this law meant, but he cites Fu Qian, an earlier commentator quoted in a Han commentary, who said:“Pu
means veiled; qu means hidden. This was a law about fugitives” (Zuozhuan, Zhao , ch..a–.b).
Kong Yingda does not make his discomfort with this explanation explicit, but it may stem from the dis-
crepancy between the Zuozhuan’s quotation from the pu qu zhi fa, which concerns the concealing of stolen
property (“He who conceals a robber’s booty shall be held to the same liability as the robber”), and Fu Qian’s
explanation, which suits the situation in the Zhang Hua Palace much better. The legal device of making one
individual liable for the penalty that is specified (by statute) for another is frequently used in the Qin legal
documents found in at Shuihudi. The formula is usually [yu X] tong zui X, “liable to the same extent
as X.” See items D, D, D, in Hulsewé , –; Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu ,
–. This practice, which is limited in the Shuihudi documents to robbery (as in the Zuozhuan example),
was different from co-adjudication, which specified that a criminal’s household, village chief, and the mem-
bers of his “group of five” would be liable to some degree for certain of his crimes. See D in Hulsewé
, –; Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu , –.
18. Zuozhuan, Zhao : –, ch. .a–.a.
19. Han Feizi, ed., ch. .b, b–a; Liao , vol.: –.
20. Han Feizi, ed., ch. .b; Liao , vol.: –.
21. Shiji ed., ., translated in Burton Watson , vol. : –. In the article cited above, Thatcher
N o t e s t o Page s 78 – 80
• 200 •
seems to have suspected that Chu officials were functionally, or at least politically, divided into “right” and
“left” moieties. If so, and if the Shiji account is to be trusted, Shao Tuo and Qu Yuan would have served the
same king at the same time in the same left “moiety.” Thatcher –: –.
22. “Skilled in the use of words” is Burton Watson’s rendition of xian yu ci ling (Burton Watson , ).
23. Xian in the phrase xianling may mean to “promulgate” or “publicly display,” as in the Zhouli reference to the
“display” of minor punishments in the marketplace. Zhouli, “Diguan,”“Sishi” (Market supervisor), , ch.
. a-b (Shisanjing zhushu ed.).
24. Beijing b, .
25. See the discussion of a possible Eastern Zhou transition in funerary symbolism from the tomb as temple or
shrine to the tomb as a small world to be inhabited in the afterlife, in Lawton , –.
26. For a detailed account of the shape of the guo and guan, and the contents of the various chambers, see Bei-
jing b, –.
27. The dragon and phoenix interlace on the inner guan seems to echo the patterns on the double coffin of
Leigudun Tomb studied by Thote ().
28. Beijing b, –.
29. See Major , –. In the future, human bone from the thousands of Chu graves dug since the s
will offer a valuable resource for defining Chu populations. Bone chemistry analysis can reveal differences
between the diet, stature, and lifelong health of north and south, rich and poor, countryman and city dweller.
It can help read, from the bones of the Chu peoples, the consequences of social stratification, as well as pat-
terns of matri- and patrilocality and degrees of genetic differentiation that are now only speculative parts of
the effort to define Chu.
30. This bamboo-shaped tally, made of bronze inlaid with gold, was discovered in Anhui at the site of Qiujia
Park, east of the county seat of Shouxian. See Wenwu bianji weiyuanhui b, –. The tally reads, in
part:“All those who send goods must use tallies and passports,” and specifies the quantity limits and permis-
sible traveling routes for its bearer. It reveals Chu’s interest in controlling the flow of people and goods
through the state. See Peters, chapter .
31. See strip .
32. See Beijing b, ; Shiji, “Chu shijia,” ch. .
33. In these strips generally, an individual’s feudal titles are indicated by the name of the fief, in this case Luyang,
and rank, in this case gong, usually translated as “duke.”
34. This translation follows the interpretation of Li Tianzhi, who prepared the transcription and annotations
included in Beijing b and c. See Beijing c, , n. .
35. As noted in Beijing b, , this rite was properly performed by a subject to his lord. See Zhouli, “Tian-
guan,”“Shanfu,” –: ch. .a–b. It must have been a proud day when the tattered remnant of the royal
Zhou performed this ritual to Chu.
36. See Beijing c, , and Beijing b, .
37. Beijing c, .
38. Beijing b, ; Beijing c, .
39. Peters , –.
40. Beijing b, .
41. Beijing c, –.
42. See, for example, Chen Wei .
43. Beijing c, .
44. Beijing c, –.
45. Accounts in the Zuozhuan refer to Chu efforts to survey lands and carry out a census of households. See
Cheng : , ch. .a (nai da hu); Xiang : –, ch. .a–.b (shi pi fu, shu jia bing).
46. Year names in passages noted herein will be translated into the Western form dates listed above.
47. Beijing c, . My understanding of this strip and those discussed below relies heavily on the analysis
furnished in Beijing b, –; the philological footnotes appended to the transcription of the strips
N o t e s t o Page s 80 – 85
• 201 •
in Beijing c, –; the article on Chu law and legal administration by Peng Hao in Beijing b,
–; and the article by Chen Wei on judicial administration, b, –.
48. As noted in Beijing b, , n. , Lan Ying is one of the three previously unknown Ying cities mentioned
in the strips. Liu Binhui and He Hao discuss the meaning of city names written in the form “X Ying” and
propose possible geographical locations for all five Ying cities with this kind of name in appendix of Bei-
jing b, –. See also Blakeley, chapter .
49. Beijing c, , .
50. Perhaps a ward of the capital at Ying?
51. This strip suggests that registration of city residents was in some cases (or for some purposes) the responsi-
bility of an official called sima tu, or “Marshal of the Conscripts.”
52. Beijing c, .
53. The status of bangren in Chu may have been equivalent to that of guoren, a subgroup of the Eastern Zhou
elite that lived in the cities and wielded a certain amount of political power. See Du Zhengsheng , ;
and Lewis , –.
54. Hulsewé , ; Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu , .
55. Hulsewé , ; Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu , –.
56. Strip .
57. Strips –.
58. Strip .
59. Beijing b, –.
60. The sibai, or “supervisor of harms,” seems to function in these strips as a specialist in matters of public
security.
61. See the use of the same term, xiangri, in strips –.
62. For the legal meaning of the term wugu in Han times, see Hulsewé , . Here, as in Hulsewé’s examples,
it is tempting to see in wugu a vestigial theory of human liability that attached whenever one stepped out-
side of a specified, traditional, and positively defined path of proper behavior. Such a theory would offer a
stark contrast to theories of liability underlying Western positive law. If correct, this interpretation would
have the advantage of combining in the term wugu both “without just cause” and “without precedent.”
63. Xinzao and xinyin seem to be official titles. Personal communication from Li Ling, May . While their
function is unclear, this case suggests that in Chu, at least, by this late period, it included some forms of adju-
dication or mediation. If we read xin as a variant of xun ‘to question or interrogate,’ the last half of the title
might be translated as “Director of Investigations,” which suits the context quite well.
64. The Zuozhuan records a dispute between two royal Zhou ministers in which representatives of the two
parties were called to present their arguments before a mediator. The dispute was solved when one party was
unable to present evidence for his side that would rebut the other side’s evidence. Xiang : –, ch.
.a–.b.
65. The notation on the back of strip mentions a date in the tenth month, probably well into the busy har-
vest season.
66. Strips –.
67. Zhouli, “Qiu guan: Da sikou,” , ch. .b; Biot , . Scholars have puzzled over the meaning of liang
ji in this passage. The Han commentator Zheng Xuan suggested that ji meant the same thing as Han quan,
or contracts inscribed on wood that were divided in half, so that each party would have a version that could
be verified by rejoining the halves. This explanation gains some support in the Baoshan strips because of
their mention of a “three part sealed tally,” referred to as evidence of a worker’s registration. See strips –.
The Tang commentator Jia Gongyan observed that Zheng Xuan may have simply meant that ji were similar
to contracts in being documents essential to the suit, as in the Zuozhuan case noted above. Zhouli, loc. cit.;
Zuozhuan, Xiang : –, ch. .a–.b. Maspero was one of the first Western sholars to focus on
the Zhouli’s careful rules of judicial procedure; he interprets this phrase as follows:“il [the minister] demandait
aux deux parties de lui presenter leurs titres justificatifs” (He [the minister] requires both parties to present
N o t e s t o Page s 8 6 – 8 7
• 202 •
proof of their claims) (Maspero –: ). His outline of Zhou procedure included five stages: accu-
sation (song), hearing requiring the presence of both parties (liang zao), pleadings (ji, ci, in this case dian?),
deposit of arrows or metal (perhaps as earnest money, to deter frivolous suits), and judgment. Ibid., .
68. It is possible that the word xing was not yet used in Chu to mean surname, as the order to register inhabitants’
deaths includes only place of residence, first name (ming), and kin group or “family name” (zu). Strip .
69. See, for example, strips , , , –.
70. Hulsewé , ; Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu , .
71. Beijing b, –.
72. Li Ling suggests that the reason many of the shouqi cases could not be tried and resolved was that the defen-
dant could not be produced in court (bujiang ti ying). Personal communication, June , . See, for
example, strips , , .
73. Maspero –, –.
74. Strip .
75. Chen Wei , –.
76. Beijing b, . The matters repeated on more than one strip include those recorded on strips , , ,
and (appears four times); , , and (three times); and , and , and , and , and
, and and (two times each).
77. Beijing b, .
78. Ibid., .
79. Zhouli , ch. .a–.b.
80. Ibid. This is the interpretation followed by Biot in his translation (Biot , ):“il y a un certain nombre
de jours fixe (pour l’appell).” Recently published transcribed texts from an early Han grave at Zhangjiashan,
just west of the city of Ying, include an example of the successful assertion of a qiju appeal by a convict,
apparently two months after judgment had been executed on him. Jiangling Zhangjiashan Hanjian zhengli
xiaozu , –.
81. Shuihudi Qinmu zhujian zhengli xiaozu , –; Hulsewé , –.
82. Sun Yirang , quoted in Peng Hao .
83. Strips –.
84. Strip .
85. Currently, scholars in China differ in their interpretations of this graph. He Linyi, for example, has concluded
that it should be read as li, with the meaning of judge or hearing official. See Shuowen, A.,“Anciently, li
and li had the same pronunciation and were used interchangeably. Thus there was no distinction between dali
and dali (high judge).” Chen Wei, however, believes that it means an assistant to the legal scribe whose name,
as recorder, appears at the end of many of the strips (Chen Wei c, ).
86. This reading assumes that the authors are correct in reading zheng as a loanword for zheng, or tax, as used in
the Zhouli passage exempting certain award fields from guozheng, or government tax. Beijing b, , n.
; Zhouli, , ch. .b.
87. This looks very like the legal reflection of a modern fenjia dispute. See, e.g., Cohen .
88. The authors of Beijing c interpret this name as referring to a consort of King Sheng of Chu ().
89. This offense is reminiscent of the pu qu zhi fa, and Wu Yu’s criticism of the king’s harboring fugitives in the
Zhang Hua Palace, above, p. .
90. For this reading of fanqiguan I am indebted to Li Ling.
91. The word used here is hou. The annotators of the transcriptions in Beijing b read hou as meaning
descendants, whereas Peng Hao suggests that the word should be read as inheritance (Beijing b, , n.
, and ). Since hou does appear in strips – from this grave, first as a verb meaning “to succeed to
[property rights]” and then as a noun meaning “one who inherits, or succeeds to [property rights],” the for-
mer reading has a slight edge over the latter.
92. Reading as ze with the Beijing c annotators, .
93. See above, p. –.
N o t e s t o Page s 8 7 – 9 2
• 203 •
94. Beijing c, n. ; . This reading is currently the subject of disagreement; Li Ling suggests that this
graph should be read instead as huo (personal communication, June , ).
95. Here we see reference to the legal official, sikou, mentioned in the Zhouli. See above, p. , and n. . Li
Tianzhi suggests that in this context the term might refer to the sikou listed in inscriptions on weapons from
the state of Han—low-level officials in the government workshops. While this interpretation would fit well
with the nature of sikou in the Shuihudi legal documents, this strip seems to refer to a judicial, decision-
making role for the officials listed as defendants. See Beijing c, , n. .
96. Beijing c, .
97. Strips –.
98. See the discussion of the case in Chen Wei .
99. Zhouli, –, ch. .a–.a; Biot , –.
100. See Weld , chap. .
101. See Gulliver .
102. Strips –.
103. Strips –.
104. See Beijing b, , n. ; strip .
105. See, for example, strips , .
106. Strips –.
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 9 2 – 103
• 204 •
27. Crump , –; Guoyu .b;Yang Kuan a, ch. .
28. See below, n. .
29. Hawkes , –.
30. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , .
31. Chen Zuquan a, b; Hubeisheng bowuguan b, Hubeisheng bowuguan b, : –, :
–; Hubeisheng wenwu guanli weiyuanhui ; Chu Huangcheng kaogu fajuedui a, b.
32. Yang Quanxi b, c.
33. See So, chapter .
34. Wang Zongshu , .
35. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , ; Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , ch. , sec. .
36. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , .
37. Beijing .
38. Ibid.; Hunansheng bowuguan .
39. Wobst .
40. Observation based upon fieldwork conducted in the Xishuangbanna,Yunnan Province, from February
to April .
41. Shiji “Wutaibo Shijia,” .
42. K. C. Chang , . These figures might also represent men of Wu or Yue cultural influence. This was the
dominant cultural substratum in the Changsha area before a Chu military presence in the Warring States
period.
43. Hertz ; Van Gennep .
44. Jingmenshi bowuguan ; Tan Weisi , .
45. Guo Dewei .
46. Henansheng Danjiangkuqu wenwu fajue dui ; Beijing a.
47. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , –.
48. Pei Mingxiang et al. .
49. Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui Baoshan mudi zhengli xiaozu , –; Beijing b.
50. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan , ; Guo Dewei , .
51. See Hubeisheng JingSha tielu kaogudui .
52. Hubeisheng wenhuaju wenwu gongzuodui .
53. Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu bowuguan .
54. Hunansheng bowuguan .
55. Hunansheng bowuguan .
56. Guo Dewei .
57. Guo Dewei , Hubeisheng Echengxian bowuguan .
58. Chen Zhenyu .
59. Guo Dewei ; Guo Shengbin .
60. For a discussion of plural society, see Smith .
61. Chen Yaojun ; Gao Zhixi a; Guo Dewei ; Hubeisheng wenwu guanlichu , ; Li Shao-
lian ; Li Xueqin ; Pei Mingxiang et al. ; Peng Hao ; Wang Jin .
62. Bai Yue minzu yanjiu weiyuanhui ; Feng Yuhui ; Fu Juyou ; Gao Zhixi b; Gao Zhixi and
Xiong Chuanxin ; Guangdongsheng wenwu guanli weiyuanhui et al. b; Guangxi Zhuangzu zizhi-
qu wenwu gongzuodui ; He Jisheng and He Jiediao ; Jiang Yingliang , –; Jin Zegong ;
Peng Hao ; Song Shuhua , ch. ; Tieshan zhongxue Zhenghexian wenwuguan ; Wu Ming-
sheng , ; Yang Hao ; Yang Yaolin and Xu Huanbin ; Zhang Chao ; Zhejiangsheng
wenwu guanli weiyuanhui et al. .
63. The following provide overall summaries of Yue-Chu presence in the Hubei-Hunan region: Gao Zhixi
b; Guo Shengbin ; Liu Yutang ; Tong Enzheng ; Wu Yongzhang .
64. See Guo Shengbin , , .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 103 – 109
• 205 •
65. For example,Yue burials are found in Hengshan (Tieshan zhongxue zhenghexian wenwuguan ), Dao-
xian and Qiuyang (in the north) (Gao Zhixi b), Yueyang, Zhuzhou, Shaoshan, Miluo, Xiangtan (Qiu
Shihua and Cai Lianzhen ), Xiangxiang, Hengyang (Feng Yuhui ), Leiyang (Hunansheng bowuguan
b), and Zixing (Fu Juyou ; Wu Mingsheng , ).
66. Jin Zegong .
67. Peters ; Peters, chapter ; Sage , ch. .
68. Zuozhuan, Huan : ; Zhuang : ; Zhuang : ;Wen : , ; Ai : . See also Sage , –;
Chen Wenxue , .
69. Chen Wenxue ; Wang Jiade .
70. Ma Chengyuan , ; Wang Liutong .
71. Yu Weichao , .
72. Wang Liutong .
73. Yu Weichao , .
74. Gao Zhixi and Xiong Chuanxin , .
75. Observations based upon fieldwork conducted in Xishuangbanna,Yunnan Province, from February to
April .
76. Shiji, “Huozhiji.”
77. Yu Ying-shih .
78. For detailed information on the Baoshan bamboo strips and bronze tally, see Weld, chapter .
79. Zuozhuan, Zhao : , ; Wang Yü–ch’üan , .
80. Shu Zhimei and Wu Yongzhang ; Wenwu bianji weiyuanhui , ;Yin Difei and Luo Changming
.
81. Yang Kuan a, .
82. Tong Enzheng , .
83. Schafer .
84. Crump , ; Guoyu ..
85. Beijing b.
86. There are four types of Warring States period Chu currency: () gold yingyuan, also called yingcheng; () gold
discs called bing; () bronze cowries; and () silver shovel-shaped coins called bu. The gold yingyuan derives
its name from the legend stamped on each of the sixteen to twenty small squares that comprise one plaque.
Ying refers to Ying, the Chu capital, and yuan is believed to designate a specific weight (see Gao Zhixi
and Li Jiahao ). Although yingyuan plaques were not consistent (weights range from to grams
and gold content fluctuated between and percent), archaeologists assume that the central government
controlled their production and distribution (see Zhang Pusheng and Hubeisheng Jingzhou diqu
bowuguan ).
The bronze cowries are the earliest as well as the most numerous currency. They are also called yiqian
(ant-nosed money) or guilian qian (ghost-faced money) because of their peculiar legend giving them an ani-
mate appearance (see Li Jiahao , ). They average . grams per coin.
The silver spade-shaped coins have been found only at the settlement site near Guchengcun, Fugou,
Henan (Henansheng bowuguan, Fugouxian wenhua guan ).
Although there has been no proper research and analysis on how coins were used in the Warring States
period economy, the distribution of these coins roughly coincides with the area Chu assimilated during the
Eastern Zhou period.
87. Beijing ; Tokyo .
88. Han Feizi, ed., .
89. Xu Zhongshu ; Xu Zhongshu and Tang Jiahong .
90. Xu Zhongshu .
91. Yunnansheng wenwu gonzuodui et al. , .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 10 9 – 113
• 206 •
92. Sichuansheng wenguanhui,Ya’an diqu wenhuaguan,Yingjingxian wenhuaguan ; Sichuansheng wenwu
guanli weiyuanhui ; Li Xiao’ou and Liu Jiming .
93. Guanzi, “Jinghongjia” section cited in Hou Dejun .
94. Shiji, “Huozhiji,” .
95. Gu Tiefu , .
96. Zhu Xia , .
97. Gao Zhixi and Xiong Chuanxin , .
98. Hunansheng bowuguan a.
99. Hunansheng bowuguan , ; Hubeisheng Tonglushan kaogu fajue dui ; Zhongguo shehui kexue
yuan kaogu yanjiu suo tonglushan gongzuodui .
100. Bagley , .
101. Wang Gungwu .
102. Shiji, “Huozhiji”: ; translation from Burton Watson , .
103. Huainanzi , also cited in Wang Gungwu , , and Taylor , –.
104. The maps found in Mawangdui Tomb also suggest the military importance of the Changsha region.
105. Zuozhuan, Xi : , .
106. Several poems in the Chuci mention perfumes and fragrances during the trancing ceremonies. For example,
see Hawkes , , .
107. Xin Tang Shu, “Dilizhi”; also cited in Schafer and Wallacker –, .
108. Wiens , .
109. Chuci, “Zhao Hun” verse , translated in Hawkes .
110. Schafer ; , .
111. Han Shu, ch. , b; Wang Gungwu , .
112. Luoyang bowuguan ; see Cook, chapter .
113. Aurousseau , .
114. Huainanzi , also cited in Taylor , –.
115. Burials excavated both at Yinshanling, Pingle (Guangxi Zhuangzu zizhiqu wenwu gongzuodui ), and
Gongcheng (Guangxi Zhuangzu zizhiqu bowuguan , –, ), in northeastern Guangxi Province,
might very well indicate indigenous villages along the Chu trade route.
116. See He Jisheng ; He Jisheng and Yang Shaoxiang ; Guangdongsheng bowuguan ; Guangdong
sheng wenwu guanli weiyuanhui et al. a, b; Guangdongsheng bowuguan et al. ; Guangdong
sheng bowuguan, Zhaoqingshi wenhuaju fajue xiaozu ; Guangdong sheng bowuguan .
117. Guangdongsheng bowuguan et al. .
118. Guangdongsheng bowuguan .
119. Xu Huanbin .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 113 – 1 2 5
• 207 •
9. Some scholars argue that because Zeng was a state independent of Chu, the Zeng Hou Yi finds cannot be
used to make arguments about Chu culture. As will already have become evident, the authors of this book
regard Zeng as having been firmly within the cultural orbit of Chu.
10. Major , .
11. Fracasso .
12. Hulsewé .
13. On the cosmograph, see Loewe ; Li Ling b; Field (and note that the translation “cosmograph”
for shi is Field’s); Major ; and Ecke . With regard to mirrors, Jenny So has pointed out to me that
“the few stone or clay casting molds with [the TLV] design have so far come primarily from the north.” (Pri-
vate communication; see also So and Bunker , n. .) The question of the meaning of the TLV pattern
itself may soon be solved, perhaps along with the significance of the game of liubo; a report in Zhongguo
wenwu bao (Oct. , : ) contains a photograph of a silk text found in a Han tomb at Yiwan, Shandong,
showing a TLV pattern (a liubo board?) with what appear to be explanatory captions. Frustratingly, the
photograph is not clear enough to allow the characters on the silk text to be read, and the accompanying
article provides no useful information; one looks forward eagerly to the publication of this material in detail.
Meanwhile, see Rawson , –, for more on liubo boards.
14. Major . The Huainanzi is of course of Han date ( ), but the court of Huainan was in a part of
Anhui that had long been under Chu control.
15. See also Hayashi .
16. These remarkable taotie-like masks, excavated in Hunan, were reported in Hunansheng bowuguan and Huai-
hua diqu wenwu gongzuodui ; see the illustration on p. . It may be that the use of masks as funerary
goods was more common in early China than has been generally realized. See, for example, a set of masks
from Fangshan County, near Beijing (in what was then the state of Yan), dated to the early Western Zhou
period; these and some other comparable masks are illustrated in Rawson , –. Masks from the
(presumptively) Ba culture site at Sanxingdui are illustrated in the same volume, –.
17. For a discussion of the names of these months, see Major , –.
18. Childs-Johnson .
19. For Jie as a demonographic text, see Harper . The whirlwind demons were discussed by Robert Chard
in “The Spirit Whirlwind in Early China,” a paper presented to the annual meeting of the Association for
Asian Studies in Boston in March .
20. See Cook . Riegel () identifies Gou Mang and Ru Shou as tutelary gods of the east and west,
respectively, and considers them to be precursor deities to Dong Wang Gong and Xi Wang Mu. Allan (,
) has written about Shang roots of later Chinese divinities. For a modern overview of early Chinese
mythology, see Birrell . See also Sukhu, chapter , especially n. .
21. For a study of snake motifs in Shang art, see Munsterberg .
22. Pankenier –.
23. Major .
24. Liu Dunyuan .
25. For the dragon and tiger as paired icons, see, for example, Dièny , .
26. Snake handling as a sign of divine protection is found in many societies; familiar modern examples include
the Hopi and Zuni Pueblo cultures of the American southwest and certain Pentecostal Christian sects of the
southern Appalachians.
27. Major , .
28. For serpent-bodied deities in the Huainanzi and cognate texts, see Major , e.g., –.
29. Both vessels are illustrated in Munsterberg , , , . See also Hentze , fig. . Jenny So com-
ments (private communication),“We have increasing evidence to support a southern provenance for [these]
Freer bronzes . . . the he from Hunan or environs, the guang from southwest Shaanxi or environs.” It is not
immediately clear to me how this information should be evaluated, but it would seem to indicate both that
an interest in serpentine motifs in cultures in the Yangtze Basin is very ancient, and that “southern” religious
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 125 – 131
• 208 •
ideas, including an interest in serpentine motifs, had some impact on Shang ritual practices and religious
beliefs.
30. Salmony .
31. Childs-Johnson , . It is not clear to what extent, if any, the Chu antler-and-tongue figures are related
to the much earlier, presumptively Ba culture, figures from Sanxingdui, Sichuan (see Rawson , –);
certain formal features, most especially an emphasis on large and sometimes protruding eyes, suggest that a
research project into the possible relationship between the Sanxingdui and Chu figures might yield interest-
ing results.
32. Hentze ; Li Ling . This use of the cicada is found in Shang symbolism of transformation; see
Childs-Johnson .
33. This motif can be seen in an amazingly wide range of contexts, from the Paleolithic cave paintings of south-
ern France to the Gundestrup Bowl (discovered in Denmark but probably of Thracian manufacture), to the
Sythian burials at Pazyryk and Noin-Ula, to ethnographic materials on Siberian and Korean shamanism col-
lected within the last century.
34. Childs-Johnson .
35. Lewis , –.
36. K. C. Chang a.
37. Cartmill .
38. Childs-Johnson ; Campbell , –; see the photo in Campbell () of a Siberian bear cult,
where the corpse of a sacrificed bear is being ritually offered some of its own flesh to eat. On the relation-
ship between hunting and sacrifice, see also Burket , e.g., :“For the ancient world, hunting, sacrifice,
and warfare were symbolically interchangeable.” See also Riegel .
39. Zuozhuan, Duke Yin, year , quoted in Lewis , . See also Childs-Johnson .
40. Major , , .
41. Murrowchick ; see especially K. C. Chang in that volume.
42. Among other issues, some scholars have debated whether the word wu can properly be translated as “sha-
man”; Mair traces the word to the Persian “magus.” Other scholars argue for a gender component in
shamanism, proposing, for example, that wu means “shamanka,” while ling means “shaman.” (On this view, the
many wu whose names are recorded in Warring States and Han texts would of course have to be seen as
female, which would entail some serious rethinking of early Chinese religion).
43. Hultkrantz .
44. Childs-Johnson’s persuasive arguments for at least some Shang rites as masked performances, however, force
a reconsideration of the character of these sacrificial and divinatory rituals; see Childs-Johnson , .
45. Hawkes ; Waley .
46. Fung , . See also So’s discussion of incense and censers in Chu culture in chapter ; also Peters, chap-
ter , note . The Chu fondness for incense may hint at a ritual use by shamans of psychoactive smoke on
appropriate occasions.
47. K. C. Chang .
48. See, for example, So , Introduction, .
49. Lubo-Lesnichenko . I am grateful to Jenny So (private communication) for some of this information.
See So and Bunker for details on the items discussed in this paragraph; the same book (n. –) dis-
cusses tuning keys for qin stringed instruments with northern and Achaemenid motifs.
50. Major .
51. Victor Mair, private communication, and Mair ; Barber .
52. Paper .
53. The nature of these “lewd” rites has been an important focus of Cook’s research; see, for example, Cook
, –. See also Sukhu, chapter .
54. Cavalli-Svorza .
55. Hentze ; several of the contributors to Barnard and Fraser .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 13 2 – 138
• 209 •
56. Schafer uses the term “farflight” to translate zhaoyao, a pair of stars at the end of the Northern Dipper
that served as the dipper’s pointer in its function as a celestial time dial; I adopt the same word here to refer
to celestial spirit journeys.
57. Fracasso ; see also Major , .
58. Yü Ying-shih ; Loewe .
59. Roth .
60. Major , –; see also Roth and Csikszentmihalyi , – ff.
61. Li Ling b; Field .
62. See Major , –, –, –, etc.
63. Field . I will explore these links further in my forthcoming book, Essays on the Huainanzi.
64. Major , , and fig. ..
65. I will explore these cosmographic issues further in essays on visualizing the round heaven and square earth
and on the cosmic pillar in my forthcoming book, Essays on the Huainanzi.
66. Cullen .
67. Pankenier .
68. Ecke .
69. See Cahill ; also n. above.
70. Fracasso .
71. Riegel .
72. Cahill .
9. Monkeys, Shamans, Emperors, and Poets: The Chuci and Images of Chu during the Han Dynasty
1. Hawkes , .
2. See Chuci Buzhu , .
3. Hawkes , .
4. Shiji, ed., Juan : . See also Burton Watson , .
5. Translation by Burton Watson , .
6. Shiji, ed., .
7. Ibid., .
8. Burton Watson , .
9. Shiji, ed., .
10. Ibid., .
11. Ibid., .
12. Han Shu, ed., Juan B:a: .
13. Shiji, ed., .
14. Lüshi chunqiu, vol. , ch. (“I bao”), .
15. Hawkes , .
16. Shiji, ed., ch. , .
17. Ibid., ,“Feng shan shu.”
18. Shiji, ed., .
19. Ibid., Juan : . See also Burton Watson , –; and Han Shu, Juan .
20. According to Han Shu .b:“In the New Territories of Nanyang there was a certain Bao Lizhang who ran
afoul the law in the time of Emperor Wu and was sent to the garrison farms at Dunhuang. Several times
along the banks of the Wo Wei River he saw wild horses, among whom there was a strange one, different
from all the rest, drinking the waters of the river. Lizhang first made a man of clay, in the hand of which he
put a bridle, along the banks of the river. Later the horse began playing around the figure and eventually
became accustomed to it. After a long while Lizhang took the place of the clay man, took the horse, and
offered it as tribute to the emperor. In order to make the horse seem supernatural he claimed that it had
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 139 – 152
• 210 •
emerged from the river.” See also Loewe’s discussion of the hymn to the “Heavenly Horses,” etc., event in
Loewe , –.
21. See Loewe , , n. .
22. This first line I have translated from the text quoted in the Yueshu section of the Shiji, ed., . The
Han Shu, Liyuezhi, .b has, instead of “the Grand Unity offers tribute” (Taiyigong), “the Grand Unity
bestows” ( Taiyikuang), a difference I will discuss later.
23. See Loewe , preface.
24. Loewe , .
25. Shiji, ed., .
26. Ibid., .
27. Ibid., Juan : .
28. Lunyu, LYZY ed., juan : . See also Waley , .
29. Xunzi, translation in Burton Watson , .
30. Shiji, ed., .
31. Yuefu shiji, .
32. See Cook, chapter ; also Cook , –.
33. Guanzi, GZJZ ed., .
34. See translation in Knechtges , –.
35. Wen Xuan, zhuan , .
36. See Han Shu, ch. , ,“Huainan Hengshan Jibei Wang zhuan.”
37. It seems likely, as many scholars have suggested, that the quote from the Li sao zhuan was interpolated into
the Shiji not by Sima Qian but by a later hand. The Li sao zhuan, according to the Han Shu, was being com-
posed around the same time the Shiji was being written. It is therefore unlikely that Sima Qian had access
to the Li sao zhuan. This would explain why it is mentioned in the Han Shu biography of the prince of
Huainan and not the earlier Shiji version. See Tang Bingzheng , ; see also Hawkes , –.
38. Quoted in Chuci buzhu, .
39. Ibid., .
40. Shiji, ed., Juan : ; cf. Hawkes , –.
41. See Chow Tse-tsung , .
42. See translation in Birch , .
43. See Han Shu .b and A.a.
44. Loewe , –.
45. See Han Shu . and Shiji ..
46. See Waley , ; and Hou Han Shu .a.
47. This refers to King Huai of Chu, not the much later prince of Huainan, Liu An.
48. “Lan” is sometimes (mis)translated as “orchid”; “Pepper and Lan” here refers to loyal and upright officials,
who on the complex imagery of the poem are given floral names.
49. Chuci buzhu, .
50. Ibid., –.
51. Pauline Yu : -.
52. Chuci buzhu, .
53. Pauline Yu , –.
54. Hawkes , .
55. Most specialists in the field agree that Zhu Rong was the ancestral spirit of the Chu royal house. In the Shiji,
in the section on the Chu hereditary house, it says, “The ancestors of Chu originate from Zhuan Xu Gao
Yang. Gao Yang was the grandson of Huang Di, and the son of Chang Yi. Gao Yang begat Cheng. Cheng
begat Juan Zhang. Juan Zhang begat Chong Li. Chong Li occupied the office of Governor of Fire for Di
Ku Gao Xin and had very great accomplishments. He was able to light and warm [rong] the world. Di Ku
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 152 – 164
• 211 •
named him Zhu Rong. When Gong Gong rebelled, Di Ku sent Chong Li to punish him but he [Chong Li]
did not complete the mission. So Di Ku punished Chong Li on the geng-yin day, made his younger brother
Wu Hui his descendant, and appointed him to the post of Governor of Fire, and he [Wu Hui] became Zhu
Rong.” From this passage we learn that Zhu Rong is a designation, like Gao Yang, that is not limited to one
person. In a recently discovered Bao Shan bamboo manuscript, Zhu Rong figures as one of the distant ances-
tors of Chu called upon in divination. This would of course make him the distant ancestor of Qu Yuan, if
there was a Qu Yuan. See Wang Guanghao , –.
56. Chuci buzhu, .
57. Chuci buzhu, .
N o t e s t o Pa g e s 164 – 17 6
• 212 •